#seonghwa reader fluff
Explore tagged Tumblr posts
Text
A NIGHT IN HOLLYWOOD â | ATEEZ SERIES
â featuring ot8!ateez in iconic HOLLYWOOD romance and rom-com movies
â TICKET BOOTH IS CLOSED! đïž : the movies are about to start! all fics will have MATURE CONTENT! MDNI!
sit back, relax, grab your popcorn and tissues, and enjoy the silver screen . . .
THE PARENT TRAP â | KHJ
TROPE: exes to lovers! divorced!au
TAGS: nsfw, smut, fluff, angst, crack, slice of life
AS DIVORCED PARENTS to two twin daughters, you and hongjoong have your fair share of work cut out. Driving to piano lessons, cheering at hockey games, drop offs at each otherâs houses, it can all be a little much. But could a relaxing summer retreat as a whole family possibly rekindle past emotions youâve swept under the rug? . . .
â IN THEATRES
DIRTY DANCING â | PSH
TROPE: bad boy!seonghwa, enemies to lovers!au , 60s!au
TAGS: nsfw, smut, angst, crack
THAT WAS THE SUMMER before JFK got shot, before the beatles came, and when you were working part time at your aunts summer resort. That was also the summer you met resident heart breaker and cocky entertainment crew member, Park Seonghwa. Remind yourself why youâre suddenly dance partners with him again? . . .
â not yet in theatres . . .
PRETTY WOMAN â | JYH
TROPE: dilf!yunho x formerstripper!reader, strangers to lovers!au, contract lovers!au,
TAGS: nsfw, smut, fluff, angst
LIVING IN BEVERLY HILLS comes with its perks. But for two different people such as yourself and multimillionaire business tycoon, Jeong Yunho, both of you canât seem to find what youâre looking for in the so called âLand of Dreamsâ. So the proposal is simple really⊠let him spoil you with money, jewelry and clothes while in return, you stay by his side. . .
â not yet in theatres . . .
MR AND MRS KANG â | KYS
TROPE: marriage!au, established relationship, spy!au, assasin!au
TAGS: nsfw, smut, fluff, ANGST, crack
WHO WOULDâVE THOUGHT picture perfect suburban neighbourhood couple, Mr. and Mrs. Kang would be at each others necks trying to kill each other first. Youâve both come this far in your marriage while hiding your secret identities, but it looks like only one person can remain standing. I guess you both did promise âin sickness and in healthâ. . .
â not yet in theatres . . .
ROMAN HOLIDAY â | CS
TROPE: royalty!au, princess!reader x reporter!san, strangers to lovers!
TAGS: nsfw, smut, fluff, angst
AS CROWN PRINCESS, youâre on a tightly scheduled tour of European capital cities. But after an especially rough day in Rome, you sneak out of the embassy to explore the so called Eternal City, running into no other than celebrity news reporter, Choi San, looking out for his next big royal scandal. . .
â not yet in theatres . . .
10 THINGS I HATE ABOUT YOU â | SMG
TROPE: college!au, stoner!mingi, enemies to lovers!au, fakedating(?)au, y2k aesthetic
TAGS: nsfw, smut, fluff, angst, crack, slice of life
YOUR YOUNGER BROTHER Wooyoung is desperate in getting you, his older sister in college, to date so that he can finally date in highschool. The options for potential candidates are scarce, considering men flock away like birds the second youâre near. Good thing campus stoner and weirdo, Song Mingi is the same as well. . .
â not yet in theatres . . .
HOW TO LOSE A GUY IN 10 DAYS â | JWY
TROPE: fashioncolumnist!reader x advertiser!wooyoung, y2k aesthetic, fake dating(?)au, enemies to lovers!au, mutual pining
TAGS: nsfw, smut, fluff, angst, crack, slice of life
LISTEN, IF IT MEANS getting a promotion at your editorial company as a news journalist instead of pop culture and lifestyle columnist, youâd do anything. And that includes pretending to be the most annoying and clingiest girlfriend to some guy for 10 whole days. But just so you know, Wooyoung likes clingy. . .
â not yet in theatres . . .
ROMEO & JULIET â | CJH
TROPE: unrequited love, star crossed lovers!au, mutual pining, secret romance (shakespeare be rolling in his grave rn)
TAGS: nsfw, smut, fluff, ANGST
FOR CENTURIES, a plague of hatred and hostility has been present in the relations between the House of Choi and your own. You know you canât be together, but yet why do you keep catching that dark haired boy staring at you so longingly? And why do you want him just as bad?. . .
â not yet in theatres . . .
a/n: for updates, follow my blog! this will be a work-in-progress so I ask for your support:(đ
taglist: @vent-stink @dazzlingstarrs @vcutparis @xpixie @potatos-on-clouds @showingmafandomlove @bibbleypoof @kpop-will-kill-me @avantalem @beabatiny @gabrielle-brugger @nsixns @amaranth1ne @stayminho @myblovedjyh @kkeshia @rebekah-reads @yoonbroom @4kwp @butterflydemons @iwaizumiismybae @soobinsputnik @stayatinykatsy @atitties @justconniez @kitten4sannie @ghostskilledmyaddiction21 @cheolsthicthighs @morethingsfandom @geminiml95 @byuntrash101 @quailbagutte @syubseokie @newworldwritings @urmom26john @sleepy-kat-here @pearltinyy @hjshyhyssnmgwyjh @cursedeastern @starryunho @piratekingateez2001 @jiminbility @paumll @drinkingrumandcocacola @roomsofangel @channies-bbg-room @meanaonthemoon @teeztopia @pommelex @kiln9z @sanhwalvr @youresolivlie @edawg77 @a-0206 @summer-gyu @bvidzsoo @yoongzsmile28 @tournesol155
taglist became too long so find the second taglist heređ no longer taking requests
#fic series: A Night in Hollywood#A Night in Hollywood#ateez smut#ateez fluff#ateez fic#ateez fanfic#ateez imagines#ateez x reader#Ateez series#ateez fanfiction#ateez#atz smut#hongjoong smut#seonghwa smut#yunho smut#yeosang smut#san smut#mingi smut#wooyoung smut#jongho smut#hongjoong fanfic#seonghwa fanfic#yunho fanfic#yeosang fanfic#san fanfic#mingi fanfic#wooyoung fanfic#jongho fanfic#nct smut#stray kids smut
4K notes
·
View notes
Text
â texting bf!ateez while theyâre on tour
- i saw ateez last weekend and miss them so bad so this is how I cope đ
warnings: kys joke, swearing, reader is a freak tbh, some nsfw?
- requests are open for multiple groups pssttt !!
#creds to yunho on my phone on twt for yunhos meme#first post omfgâŠ#ateez fanfic#ateez fic#ateez x reader#ateez texts#ateez smut#ateez fluff#ateez imagines#hongjoong x reader#seonghwa x reader#yunho x reader#yeosang x reader#san x reader#mingi x reader#wooyoung x reader#jongho x reader#kpop smau#kpop x reader
4K notes
·
View notes
Text
ATEEZ when you meet another idol!
note: jealousy, death jokes (?), other idols mentioned⊠thatâs it.
#ateez x reader#ateez smau#ateez texts#ateez drabbles#ateez fluff#ateez ot8#ateez x you#ateez fanfic#ateez imagines#hongjoong x reader#seonghwa x reader#yunho x reader#yeosang x reader#san x reader#mingi x reader#wooyoung x reader#jongho x reader
3K notes
·
View notes
Text
HEAD OVER HEELS | p.sh ë°ì±í
pairings + warnings: heels!obssessed!hwa x fem!reader, creampie, breeding kink (literally breeding everywhere >_<), just pure smut so mdni! 18+, unprotected sex, exhibitionism (?)
synopsis: âget hot on ya heelsâ
a/n: just got some inspiration looking at some of the reblogs from my previous works on hwa and one of them said that hwa may have a kink of loving to their s/o in heels, so credits to whoever who said that i love you
àšà§ â masterlist â§Ëââąââââàšà§ââââąâ§âËâč
you owned a lot of heels, but âa lotâ would definitely be an understatement. the heels came in tens, even dozens - from the classic YSLâs to the fancy Dolce & Gabbanaâs, but regardless the type, it all boiled down to a single reason: park seonghwa.
hwa would always buy you heels everytime he goes out for shopping with his bandmates. his poor and innocent friends thought that it was ânothing more than an act of loveâ but oh,, you knew for sure that it wasnât. it was simple, really, he loved how you looked in them when you two were having a lil baby making session <3. so when he hastily kicked off his shoes and fumbled his way over to the bedroom at one in the morning where you were just about to tuck yourself to bed,, you werenât surprise at all.
âjagiya, look heheâ he shook the huge shopping bag, smug look smeared all over his face. âletâs do it nowâ donât get mistaken,, hwa had his priorities set straight so he didnât care one bit when he carelessly tore the luxurious Louis Vuitton wrapping in half like a spoilt child. you barely uttered a reply but he was already holding both of your ankles, slipping on the wine red heels on your feet. it took a few moments for hwa to soak in the sight - you in his plain white tee with your lace panties coupled with the pair of high heelsâŠ.god,, and when it finally came to him, hwa could only mumble âf-fuckâŠsâprettyâŠ.gonna ruin you princessâ before instantly reaching for the buckles on his belt.
jeans and belt pooling around his knees with his veiny cock slapping against his abdomen, he set you up in a mating press, hooking both of your legs over his shoulder. gently kissing each side of your ankles, he aligned his girthy tip against your hole.
âhahâŠfuckâŠwanna breed you so badâŠyouâll be such a pretty mommy fâmeâ *schlop!* in an instant, his hips slammed tightly against yours and his girthy base came into contact with your folds. thatâs it. seven-inch all in at once. this was the feeling youâd never seemed to get used to no matter how many times the both of you did it, so it got you instantly gripping on hwaâs shoulder blades. ânnngghâŠ.hwaâŠfeels sâfullâŠsâgood...â tears were threatening to spill from your eyes, so he reached in for a sloppy kiss, a string of saliva connecting from both of your coated lips.
but,, of course you were wrong to think that it was the end because hwa was pussy-drunk. extremely drunk with the thought of you. all he desired was to pound that tight pussy loose and watch it seep with his cum. so he did exactly that. with sweaty bangs sticking to his forehead, he buried his head into your neck, deep groans casting vibrations against your skin. with every hard thrust, your nails dug deeper into his shoulders, whimpers turning a pitch higher. "h-hwa...gonna cum..."
"hold on for me princess, i wanna try something.." hwa instantly flipped you on your stomach - ass up, face down in a doggy-style position, and when he entered your sensitive hole again to continue his pounding ordeal, you swear you felt his cock reach in about an inch deeper. oh boy,, you were going to lose your mind very soon.
it took the both of you no more than half a minute to reach your highs and when it did, it felt straight out of a porn scene. with hwa's groans turned into nothing but an endless chant of curses and high-pitched whimpers, and your moans turned into broken sobs, he pressed his hip as deep as it could have gone against yours, releasing loads and loads of hot white cum, filling you up full. and when hwa finally pulled out, his cum was everywhere - seeping out of your hole, dripping down your thighs and heels, coating your wine-red heels in a layer of translucent fluid. he hate to admit it but the sight of you nearly got him hard again.
"fuck...princess, i love you so much, could do this everyday"
#ateez imagines#ateez oneshot#ateez x reader#ateez fanfic#ateez drabbles#ateez fic#kpopff#ateez x y/n#ateez fluff#seonghwa x you#seonghwa ff#seonghwa au#ateez seonghwa#atz smau#atz fanfic#atz drabbles#atz smut#atz hard hours#atz scenarios#atz#atz imagines#atz x reader#park seonghwa#seonghwa oneshot#seonghwa smut#seonghwa scenarios#seonghwa x reader#kpop smau#kpop smut#kpopfic
1K notes
·
View notes
Text
our leaves must fall before our flowers can bloom
genre: poly hockey team!ateez x coach fem!reader, enemies/strangers to lovers, athlete!au, slow burn, fluff, angst
length: 37.6k
c/w: sweaty and athletic ateez (warning well deserved), explicit profanity, themes of corruption and rocky family relationships, trauma, hurt/comfort, injuries, kissing, boys are in an established relationship, m x m interactions
synopsis: you become the new coach of the elite men's ice hockey team, the red devils. but with both yourself and the team carrying burdens of the past, you all find it difficult to see eye to eye. as you lead them to the championships in the korean ice hockey league, you discover that teamwork and trust is not as straightforward as it seems.
a/n: it has made me incredibly touched to see so many of my readers from the essence of youth come back to support this new oneshot. thank you from the bottom of my heart ⥠and as always, this fic would not have been possible without @sorryimananti-romantic and her undying support
if someone were to ask yunhoâor anybody on the teamâwhen he feels the most alive, his answer would be the same every single time: when he is on the ice, just like he is right now.
the air of the rink is already chilly, but with the added cold of emerging autumn, each rugged lungful he takes fills his chest with vigour. only his own heavy breathing can be heard as the rest of the playersâ shouts become muffled into the background outside of his helmet. he tightens his grip on his stick, muscles locked and engaged with adrenaline. his vision narrows, an opening suddenly clearing itself through the tangle of sticks and jungle of skatesâa golden opportunity for him to take.
âsan!â he yells.
their usual goaltender glances upwards as he handles the puck rebounding off the boards. his jaw tightens and with a practised flick of his wrist, san chips the puck over an incoming stickâs attempt to block the pass. thereâs a burst of explosive power as yunho speeds up along the opposite boards to receive the landing puck, hoping to break away from the opposing teamâs offensive players before he passes it off.
the flash of a blue jersey appears in yunhoâs vision with alarming momentum. they lower and widen their stance, shoulder positioned in front ready to knock him directly into the boards in an attempt to steal the puck, leaving yunho with no choice but to mirror their actions. he braces himself as the opponent rams into him with more force than a usual play, and in combination with their own towering height, yunho finds himself being pushed into the plexiglass panels as he loses possession of the puck.
involuntarily, he lets out a threatening growl of vexation. there is a teasing chuckle from the other player that still has him pinned against the wall despite the continuing game, which clearly tells him that the excessive body check was deliberate. yunho has half a mind to flip their positions, knowing he could easily overpower the other. but before he can adjust his stick out of the way to make good use of his hands, the opponent playfully knocks their helmets together.
âyouâre hot when you get all competitive and riled up.â
all of the tension escapes yunhoâs body, because he will never not find mingiâs attempts to flirt mid-gameâwith his mouthguard and resultant bumbling pronunciationâto be amusing. he endearingly rolls his eyes and sighs, âhave you not heard of, âdonât poke the bearâ?â
âyouâre not a bear, though,â mingi squirms cheekily on the spot, still up in yunhoâs personal space because he knows the older will never be truly annoyed by his antics. âyouâre just a cute, harmless puppy.â
before mingi can blink, yunho grabs him by the shoulders and pins him against the wall. yunho smirks, âand they also say, âlet sleeping dogs lieâ.â
wooyoung tongues his cheek with mischief at the sight of the two, nice and cosy against the walls of the rink. he hands his stick off to seonghwa, who is starting to remove his helmet, and skates in their direction, ignoring the dull throb in his left ankle. wooyoung only bothers to slow himself down slightly, instead letting his trajectory be cushioned by something else.
mingi lets out a pathetic noise as the air is squeezed out of his chest from the impact of wooyoung and yunhoâs added weight. the latter grunts out, a little breathless, âwoo, please, youâre going to knock somebody out like this one day.â
it goes in one ear and out the other as wooyoung grins up at him to state, âseonghwa scored so we lost âcause you were too busy making out with mister mingles here.â
yunho pushes off the wall to free himself from the sandwich of bodies and pivots on his skates to jab wooyoungâs padded chest. âyou and san were doing the exact same thing just five minutes ago.â
âweâre on the same team,â wooyoung shrugs, âwhereas mingi is not, so youâre fraternising with the enemy. now come on losers, captainâs wrapping up practice.â
the three of them glide along the ice to rejoin the rest of the team, where they are stepping out of the rink to sit on the benches. they remove their helmets and start unlacing their skates as hongjoong gathers the attention of the team.
âgreat work from everybody today, especially you, jongho. your backhand wrist shots are improvingâkeep it up. now just a reminder to everyone that our regular games start next week so i want you all to make sure you are stretching and cooling down properly,â he emphasises. he pointedly looks at yeosang, who has already begun to wander his way off to the changerooms, at the same time that seonghwa scruffs him by the back of his jersey and gently tugs him back to the team.
jongho peels off his blue practice jersey as he scans the arena and absentmindedly asks, âis coach still not here? itâs already the end of practice.â
âhe said he had something to sort out today, but would come round if everything went well,â seonghwa answers, also craning his neck to look for signs of their coach.
from where you and coach cho are watching from the designated scouting area in the arena, the team is unable to spot you two. you had come from the final negotiations of your contract with coach cho and had watched their team, the red devils, play the last period of their game. despite it only being a friendly match amongst the teamâs players, you have already grasped a sense of their playing styleâit is heavy on the offensive at the expense of defence, just like how you used to play. it is fast-paced, aggressive andâŠprone to injury.
âletâs go meet the team,â coach cho voices, making his way out of the viewing area as you follow beside him. all the players look up from their skates that they are still unlacing or from their stretches on the floor when you two near the arrangement of benches surrounding the rink. they greet coach cho enthusiastically and you can see why from the way the older man smiles at them like they are his own sons.
ây/n, this is the team, the red devilsâmy pride and joy. boys, this is y/n,â he introduces. âi had to miss practice to meet up with y/n and make sure she was happy to sign on as part of the red devils.â
said team gives you disinterested glances, a complete change from the receptivity with which they respond to coach cho. one of the red-jerseyed boys, who you recognise as wooyoung, utters sarcastically, âcute, but we donât need a mascot or cheerleader.â
coach cho chuckles lightly, âsheâs your new coach.â
âhold on, you were serious aboutââ ââare you coaching a different teamââ ââyou donât want us anymore?â
some of the boys erupt into a barrage of questions, trying to make sense of the sudden announcement, whereas the others stay quiet, flickers of flashbacks stirring up from within the depths of their memories. their coach raises his hands to settle them as he apologises, âi didnât want to say anything before i was one hundred percent sure that things would go ahead, and i wasnât sure whether y/n would accept the offer.â
âis it because your wife is due soon?â san interrupts.
coach cho nods, âwith twins, and i want to be present to helpâas a husband and a father. but that just isnât feasible as your coach, as much as i love you boys.â
training as professional athletes takes incredible perseverance, discipline and commitment. there are early mornings, late nights, weekends and public holidays. it takes sacrifices in the form of time and relationships, especially when they must travel away from home for up to weeks on end to compete in matches. and with the start of the regular season, the intensity is only going to ramp up. as hard as the athletes train, the coach works twice as hard to make it all possible.
the team needs somebody to be there for them to ensure they make it into the playoffs, and it just wonât be fair for anybodyâthe players and his own familyâif coach cho were to keep his position. and the team gets it, they really do, butâ
âsheâs the new coach?â yunho frowns in confusion. âno offence, but weâre not a bunch of kids for her to practise being a soccer mum to.â
âshe was the assistant coach for the grey eagles,â coach cho discloses.
âthe grey eagles? the under-21 menâs championship team?â yeosang looks incredulous.
mingi sceptically comments, âthe fact that weâve never seen or heard of her before probably tells us enough.â
hongjoongâs lips purse sourly as he tries his hardest to analyse the situation with the professionalism of the teamâs captain. but with the sudden change in coaches and the same critiquing doubts as mingi, hongjoong cannot help but feel his personal judgement webbing over his mind. over the teamâs entire career as an elite ice hockey team thus farâfive years, now well into their sixthâthe red devils have only ever had two coaches. coach cho has been with them for the longest and whilst it took the team a while to eventually warm up to him, he has been with them for almost quadruple the amount of time it took to trust him.
the teamâs alternate captain, seonghwa, speaks to you directly, âif you donât mind me asking, why are you not playing as an athlete yourself? youâre clearly our ageânowhere near retiring.â
you knew from the very start that your age would make your credibility as a coach much lower, and your answer to seonghwa will not help your case either. âi stopped playing.â
âhow come?â
the trigger of memories fills your nose with a sharp stinging smell. you blankly reveal, âi chose to stop playing.â you know exactly how it sounds like to somebody else, even more so to professional athletes. coach cho has also told you of the teamâs hardheadedness and strong will when it comes to the passions of their career, so you are expecting the cold receptiveness that you are met with.
your response strikes the wrong chord within wooyoung. there was a point in his career not too long ago when the choice of continuing to play or not was at risk of becoming a forced decision. the way you answer so callously with those very words that had threatened to tear his world apart has his jaw grinding and eyes darkening, and he is not the only athlete in the arena who feels similarly.
âi would rather choose to die before i choose to stop playing. ice hockey is my entire life and without it, i am not living either,â hongjoong jabs and you cannot help but clench your fists because you know exactly what he means. still, you stay quiet as he continues, âsorry, but i canât respect a âcoachâ who chose to stop playing.â
at the captainâs words and subsequent move to leave for the changerooms, the rest of the team also gather their equipment and follow his steps. sanâs feet falter in front of you, expression hesitant until he decides to voice, âour team needs a bit of time. itâs hard for us to warm up toâŠoutsiders, and i know it might not mean much to say this but we have our reasons. donât expect us to blindly trust you just because youâre a coach.â
the use of the word âoutsiderâ does not go unnoticed as you nod, âof course.â
san jogs off to rejoin the others and coach cho hums, âguess some things havenât changed. they were just as prickly to me when i first became their coach.â
you raise an eyebrow, âprickly? to you?â
âyes, believe it or not,â he chuckles nostalgically. âweâve come a long way because iâve been their coach for years now. but it took me a while before i was able to break down their walls.â
you briefly mull over the information, then ask out of curiosity, âwhat would you have done if i didnât sign the contract?â
âbegged you to rethink your decision,â he jokes with a pleased chortle. âi would have to start looking for a different coach, i suppose. you were my only pick.â
âbut why me, of all people? there are so many other experienced coaches that you can choose from.â
he looks at you, eyes glinting with intuition and confidence as he simply says, âyouâre familiar with their playing style. they play just like you used to.â at your silent processing, coach cho probes, âwhy didnât you tell them the real reason?â
you smile wistfully, âi didn't tell them because iâm not here to gain their pity.â
some of the boysâ voices grow louder as they emerge from the changerooms, changed into fresh clothes and their kit bags slung over their shoulders. you hear one of them ask, âcaptain, is she really going to be our new coach?â
they step out from the facilityâs corridor and you accidentally make eye contact with hongjoong, yet neither of you look away. maintaining a steady gaze directly at you, he responds with a slight glower, âmaybe, but sheâs only the coach by title. iâm still the captain of the team, so letâs see who everyone listens to.â
as they exit the rinkâs arena, you feel a fire of determination growing inside of you. you have won over your own demons and you have won the championships beforeâthis is nothing in comparison. whether your next words are for coach cho or for yourself to hear, it does not matter.
âi may not play anymore but i was still once an athlete, and no athlete has ever, in their career, wanted pity. iâm here to earn the teamâs respect and i will win over them, especially their captain.â
you watch the swing of the glass door as it shuts behind the players, catching a brief glimpse of the trees lining the arenaâs perimeter. it is the first day of autumn when you meet the red devils for the first time and outside, the leaves are beginning to change their colours.
autumn, 2018: pre-season
hongjoong believes all coaches are to be respected. it does not matter what kind of team they coach, how many years of experience they have, or whether they have built up a reputation for themselves. to hongjoong, respect for coaches is not something earned nor negotiableâit is something well-deserved and expected, as is for anybody in a position that is higher in the chain of command.
he may be the captain of their unofficial team, but hongjoong knows that the way a team can place their blind trust in the coach is irreplaceable, regardless of how much the other players rely on him too.
hongjoong watches as his boys carry out the practice drill he has set up for them. yeosang handles the puck around the cones before passing it to wooyoung, primed offensively near the goal to make a quick shot, who groans when his shot rebounds off the post. as he retrieves the disc, yeosang takes over wooyoungâs position near the goal ready to receive yunhoâs pass as he starts to work his way through the cones next.
they are limited in the type of drills they can practise because hongjoong was only able to rent half of the community rink for a measly two hours. the boys are not even in proper uniform, wearing only their shin guards under their sweatpants and gloves on their hands to prevent any injuries when the centre had stated very firmly they would not be allowed in with their bulky equipment.
and yet, none of this has dampened the boysâ spirits. san teasingly brags that it is his chance to show off his skills other than goaltending, and jongho thanks hongjoong quietly for renting the rink in the first place. their understanding nods and comforting hugs make hongjoongâs heart clench, even more so as the team eagerly and diligently practise the drills in mediocre conditions but with fiery determination to prove their worth as newly-signed athletes under the kq blue birds.
this is exactly why hongjoong is driven to find them a coachâany coach: to give his boys a solid pillar they can rely on, because he himself lacks the resources and strings to pull in order to fulfil their shared dreams. he needs to keep his boys as one team, instead of scattered into other teams as extra players like a gracious opportunity for the leftovers, since kq does not yet have a coach available for the eight of them.
âcaptain!â
the excitement in seonghwaâs voice startles hongjoong more than the speed at which the alternate captain skates towards him. seonghwa digs his skates into the ice at the last second, stopping himself just shy of knocking the other over as he exclaims, âhe emailed back!â
âthe coach you reached out to?â hongjoong clarifies, eyes growing wide.
having caught wind of his signed contract as a professional athlete, an acquaintance of seonghwaâs had reached out offering to pass on the contact of their acquaintance, who apparently knew somebody with coaching experience. it was rare for a coach to take on a rookie team unless there were incredible benefits, so he and hongjoong had drafted and sent an email with little to no expectations for a reply. but seonghwaâs furious nodding is telling otherwise, and his eyes sparkle as he shoves his phone in hongjoongâs face to show him the email.
dear mr park, thank you for your interest and for reaching out with your proposal. i have looked at your athlete profiles and it appears that you all have big dreams and extremely promising futures. it would be my utmost pleasure to help you all reach your true potential by coaching your team. if you would like to arrange a meeting in person to discuss expectations and conditions regarding training, competitions and future championships prior to finalising the contracts with your company, please let me know what times and dates best suit yourself and your team captain, mr kim. i look forward to working with you all. kind regards, coach yeon
âholy shit,â hongjoong steadies seonghwaâs giddy hand to read the email again. when he reaches the last line, he starts once more from the beginning to make sure his eyes are not lying to him. then he breathes out with finality, âholy shit. am i reading this right?â
âyeah, joong. youâre reading it right.â
hongjoong is not often one to be affectionate with the others, but yanking seonghwa into a bone-crushing hug as he repeats holy shit like a mantra is the only response he is able to muster. the older laughs wetly, throat constricting with overwhelming joy and he holds onto his captain until the other pulls back.
âyou tell them, okay?â seonghwa does not wait for a response before he is raising his voice to gather the others, âboys! hongjoong has good news for us!â
like puppies responding to the call of food, their heads immediately perk up and they abandon the puck and the drill to speed towards their two captains. there is a clamour of questions as they enthusiastically predict what is going to be said.
âare they letting us use the rink for longer?â
wooyoung squeezes himself in between yunho and mingi to ask, âare we getting the whole rink?!â
âno way,â san gasps, âor did our practice jerseys arrive?â
hongjoongâs eyes soften at their guesses. his boys demand so little from him when he wants to give them everything they could never even think of asking for. he glances at seonghwa, who looks just about ready to burst from his own excitement, then reveals, âweâve found a coach willing to take on our team.â
dead silence. yeosang blinks and wooyoungâs jaw drops. jongho, who had been lazily circling around the group, comically slows to a stop, joining the rest of the boys in frozen stupor. it is only broken when yunho dares to confirm, âdoes this mean we wonât be rostered as extras for other teams?â
everyoneâs hopeful eyes look at hongjoong. he nods, âweâre staying together and playing as our own team.â
it is obvious the moment the information registers in their minds and the implications of what it means for the teamâs future starts to sink in. they explode into a flurry of movement and hongjoong and seonghwa find themselves swept up into the middle of a clumsy group huddle as shouts are exchanged, uncaring of who is listening or talking.
âare we finally playing in championships with the big dogs?â
âweâre going to play interstate?â
âoh my god, what if we get into nationals?â
ânah, fuck that boys, letâs go international! weâre going to represent korea one day and become the best team in the world.â
the amount of voices overlapping one another are overwhelming, but it is overwhelming in the way that it makes hongjoong soar up into the clouds, wings stretched to their full span and carried by the hollers and cheers surrounding him in every direction. his cheeks hurt from smiling because these are the boys that he knows and loves.
they may only be a small team of eight, but they have dreams that are big enough to fill the entire universe.
âwhatâs the coaches nameââ ââknow if theyâre a good coachââ ââteams have they coached beforeââ
seonghwa chuckles as the boys hound them with question after question and hongjoong appeases their curiosity dotingly, âweâll find out when we meet himâcoach yeon.â
but it does not matter what qualifications coach yeon has or does not have, and it does not matter what teams he has coached or has not coached before. what matters is that he is a coach and he is willing to be their coach, because it means that hongjoong and his boys are finally taking the next step towards their big dreams.Â
and most importantly, they will be in this togetherâŠas the red devils.
autumn, present: regular season
âagain.â
hongjoong grits his teeth, taking up his position as centre again in the marked circle for the practice drill. even during defensive faceoff plays, he and the team are accustomed to taking on an aggressive approach. when he wins possession of the puck, the wingersâusually yeosang and wooyoung, or jongho when substituted onâquickly breakaway and move forward with him into the offensive zone.
obviously, they have other strategic plays too to switch up the predictability of their tactics, such as moving the puck towards the board whilst yeosang covers him, or by passing the puck back to the mingi in defence. but overall, their team is capable of rapidly flipping from defensive to offensive play using the aggressive setup.
the practice drill you are currently running emphasises heavily on the defenceâthe reverse setup play. hongjoong is to pass backwards but in the direction of the boards whilst yeosang supports and wooyoung covers the area directly between the circle and san. mingi moves towards the boards to receive the puck, and their other defenceman, yunho, assists with covering the goal.
hongjoong does admit that this play is much safer and stabler, but it is also much slower andâŠcowardly. his team is called the red devils for a reason and their reputation as demons on ice is not something that he is going to throw awayânot following years of blood, sweat and tears to stand back up after falling during their rookie year.
when he assumes his stance once again inside the faceoff circle opposite seonghwa, who is playing the centre position as the mock opponent, you drop the puck onto the centre dot. the moment it hits the ice, hongjoong clears it with his stick towards the right boards. it doesnât go back far enough for mingi to receive though, so yeosang makes the split decision to burst sideways to retrieve the puck, all three forwards moving aggressively in synchronisation to advance offensively once he gains possession.
you stop them, shaking your head. âagain.â
it has been a week since your first meeting with the team, and with the start of the regular season, training has focused on refining their strategies. the red devils are playing in the korean ice hockey league for the second time, an annual national championship with a singular menâs division.
teams from all over korea gather in seoul to compete in regular-season games at the gangneung ice arena against the other teams in rotation. depending on the number of participants, the red devils will need to play an average of three games a week for the next five to six months. then based on the outcome of the games, if your team scores within the top thirty two, they will be able to enter the playoffs.
last year, the red devils were only able to make it to the quarterfinals before they were knocked out. but considering it was their first time competing in a proper championshipâas opposed to the rookie leagues and interstate competitions they competed in during the first four years of their careerâmaking it into the top eight teams out of over a hundred or so teams was already impressive enough.
your teamâs first regular-season game starts tomorrow, so it does not matter that this is the sixth time in a row that you have stopped them during this drill. you will make them restart until they perfect the play. with that in mind, you release the puck onto the centre dot of the circle once more, but this time seonghwa wins the faceoff, clearing it to the side where jongho is waiting as his left wing. seonghwa looks at you guiltily and anticipates the word that will come out of your mouth.
you bite your tongue, having sensed the rising tension amongst the team an hour ago, but now they are almost at their boiling point. closing your eyes briefly, you try reminding yourself to think about the situation from your playersâ perspectives.
their career progression rides on this championship, and with their grit and determination, they will not settle for simply beating their own record in ranking. no, they vie for first place. only the top team secures a position in the international ice hockey league, the most coveted opportunity to represent korea in the championship between the worldâs best teams.
and it is during this vital timeâwhen the stress levels and stakes are as high as they can getâthat the boys have suddenly had to change coaches. not only have they lost their most trusted support and guide, they have only had one week to adjust to their new oneâyou. in the grand scheme of things, one week is nowhere near enough time to develop any sort of meaningful relationship where they are able to listen to and rely on you.
taking a breath, you explain, âbeing so focused on offence leaves your team vulnerable if the opposing team also has aggressive forwards that you canât break through. the faceoff play needs to be adjusted for those situations, otherwise itâll be too difficult to control the puck and it will more than likely end up in chaos. it wonât be a game of professional skill anymore, but a circus of dirty play.â
your defence-focused coaching style has worked well for all the past teams you have taught, both menâs and womenâs teams. you know that the boys play an offence-focused style; you are reminded too closely of your past self every time they rush head-on into every situation. and it is exactly because of thatâbecause you know the dangers that come with their aggressive styleâthat you are making them adjust their play. their career comes first and if they suffer an injury, there may not be a career left.
so you will play the bad cop if you have to. they will come to understand you one day.
san bites down on his mouthguard as he listens from his position in the goal. he is able to see each and every play unfold, better than any other of his teammates, so he knows where you are coming from. whilst he has become used to the pressures that come with goaltending, no amount of training or competitions will ever fully eliminate the sudden spike in fear and anticipation the moment the opposing teamâs forwards break past yunho and mingi.
san is the teamâs last line of defence and the best outcome is that a game never comes down to just him, the opponentâs stick, and his goal. it is true that his team needs to work on their defensive plays, so when the others huff in defiance and reluctantly reset their positions, san simply lowers his centre of gravity in wait for your cue to restart the drill.
âagain.â
outside the arena, the echo of sticks and scraping of skates sound faintly as the first leaf of autumn begins to fall to the ground. as time passes, the rest of the leaves will also succumb to a similar fate, only differing in how. some will fall in a slow and graceful descent, whilst othersâŠ
âŠa rapid and spiralling whirlwind downwards.
counting the heads and finding all eight of your players seated in the bus, you nod to the driver to close the door and start driving. most of the boys have chosen to sit on a two-seater by themselves, only yunho and mingi choosing to sit together. they share a set of wired earphones, eyebrows furrowed in concentration at one of their phones, likely monitoring one of their own matches or one of another teamâs.
the rest of the boys sit alone, faces grim and tight as they stare out the window. they look exactly like you used to and it hits you with a wave of bittersweet nostalgia.
the ride to the competition venueâmuch less for the very first game of the seasonâis always the quietest, air strung tight with nerves as everyone prepares themselves psychologically for the inevitable pressures that the game will bring. being able to compose and centre oneâs mindset is already half the battle won, and whilst nobody says it out loud, you all know that todayâs results, despite it only being day one, will set the tone for the next four to five months as they fight to qualify for the playoffs.
as you make one final sweep from the back of the bus to the front whilst it pulls away from the curb, you accidentally make eye contact with yeosang. you give him a polite smile and he opens his mouth, closes it on second thought, then decides to ask anyway, âdo you want to sit here?â
it is a lie to say that you are not surprised by the question, so you stumble over your response as you stammer, âoh, okay. thanks.â
yeosang reciprocates your noise of disorientation and when he fumbles to move his bag aside that had been occupying the space beside him, you belatedly realise he was only asking out of courtesy. but backtracking now and rejecting his offer would be a million times worse and you can only try to hide the flaming heat behind your cheeks as best as you can as you sit down in the seat.
he fiddles with the straps of his bag and you can feel his discomfort reeking off his hands. in an attempt to break the ice, you glance at him, âare you nervous for the game?â
he nods, âdonât think it gets any less nerve-wracking no matter how many games you play.â
âwell this is a pretty big championship. you have every reason to feel nervous,â you hum.
yeosang levels you with a look. âare you trying to make me feel better or worse?â
you do not know him well enough to be able to discern whether he is joking with you or not. opting to clear your throat instead, you point out, âyou have your teammates who you can trust.â
âyeahâŠteammates.â
and you have me, too, as your coach, you want to say.
the hopeful glimpse in the dark of your eyes is enough for yeosang to pick up on your thoughts. he swallows uncomfortably and looks away.
we donât know that yet.
you bite the inside of your cheek, trying once more to extend the conversation after a pregnant pause. âdid you guys have a coach before cho?â either you have a shitty sense of appropriate conversation starters or yeosang wants absolutely nothing to do with you (it is likely both, but one can be optimistic), because his shoulders tense almost immediately.
âwe didâŠjust one,â he starts off carefully. you think that that is going to be the end of it, but then he adds on, âwe donât really talk about him though.â
and there it isâthe end of the conversation. it is his nice way of telling you that there is no more to be said, so you sit the rest of the ride in silence next to yeosang, pretending not to let the sheer awkwardness suffocate you.
when the bus arrives at the gangneung ice arena, you hurry to alight and only then do you feel like you are able to breathe again. you plaster on a smile and notify the boys, âyour first game is in two hours against the panthers. youâve been allocated locker room 3B.â
they make their way into the centre and you trail behind in wait as they find their designated space. warm-ups will be first so they will not be needing their full gear just yet, which means it should not take long for them to change.
inside the locker room, the red devils shrug off their bulky duffle bags and change into their game jerseys, lacing and relacing their skates to ensure the snuggest fits. hongjoong alerts, âboys, time to go out and start warming up,â receiving a chorus of acknowledgement as everyone grabs the rest of the gear that they need.
before jongho places his phone into his assigned locker, he habitually taps on the screen one last time to check for any notifications and finds a single text from his younger brother, jonghyuk. he knows he should not read it, much less right before his first game, but the smaller part inside him that yearns for his familyâs recognition dares to hope for something. dragging the preview down to avoid opening it, jongho reads the text.
are you just going to keep pretending you havenât read our messages?
jongho clenches his jaw and swipes the notification away as if that will also erase it from his mind. tossing his phone into the locker, he shuts it with a harsh swing, resting his forehead against the cool metal as he closes his eyes and breathes out shakily. this gameâthis championshipâjongho has to win; he cannot afford to lose.
âcaptain.â
hongjoong turns around to see jongho striding up towards him, brows furrowed and voice troubled as he questions, âare we really not going to tell coach what our game plan is? shouldnât we work together with her?â
âjongho,â the captain sighs, âwe got lucky with coach cho, but we know better than anyone else that not all coaches are like him.â
from where he has been listening in on the conversation at the doors leading out of the locker room, seonghwaâs shoulders stiffen. there is a moment of silence; the rest of the team have already made their way to the ice rink.
âwhat if we lose?â
it is the way that his voice grows small and timid that hongjoong realises it is not his captain that jongho needs right now. hongjoongâs gaze softens as he searches the youngerâs eyes, âdid your family say something again?â
he receives no answer but it tells him more than enough. âyou trust me?â
jonghoâs almost imperceptible nod does not escape hongjoongâs observations, so he continues to reassure, âweâll win. my boys are the best players, you included, and we already have experience playing in this competition.â he ducks down slightly to meet jonghoâs gaze, âand even if we do lose? we lose because of our own skillsânot because of anybody else.â
his words tug a small smile out of the corner of the youngestâs lips, and hongjoong returns it with a relieved smile. with a nudge, he sends jongho in the direction of the door, where seonghwa pretends to ruffle his hair affectionately knowing that it will be dodged. seonghwa chuckles lightly and watches him walk off, unbeknownst to his captain watching him.
âhey,â hongjoong calls out gently, âi know what youâre thinking, but that wasnât what i meant.â
seonghwa looks back and winces, âi canât help it.â
âand thatâs why i will keep telling you no matter how many times you need to hear it. it is not your faultânever was, and never will be,â hongjoong cocks his head playfully as he raises an eyebrow.
âsame goes to you then, captain,â seonghwa returns the banter, shoulders relaxing and head shaking, ânot your fault either.â
âyouâre right, so letâs get the fuck out there and smash our game, yeah?â hongjoong slings his arm around the other and leads them both out of the locker room to join the rest of the boys.
what he does not say, though, is that seonghwa is wrong. seonghwa may have been the one to reach out to coach yeon, but hongjoong was the one who made the executive decision to accept and trust coach yeon.
he is not going to make the same mistake twice this time, because it is not just about protecting his dreams, his career, or those of his teammatesâit is about protecting the people he loves.
hongjoong will not let them fallâŠnot again.
winter, 2018: regular season
jongho twirls his phone in his hand, intermittently turning the screen on and off. he sits in the corner of the locker room, away from the rest of the boys as they wait for coach yeon to return from checking in and filling out their required paperwork. only several competitions later will they realise that their locker room is small, cramped and dim, but to their fresh, bright-eyed excitement at competing in a professional league for the first time, they hardly have time to critique the assigned space.
the phone comes to a stop. making up his mind, jongho taps on the screen and navigates to the keypad. dialling his motherâs number, he brings the phone up to his ear and waits with bated breath as it is left to ring.
âwhat do you want,â comes her curt response when she finally picks up.
jonghoâs words falter, âoh, nothingâŠi just wanted to tell you that weâre playing our first game today.â
âgame? your little team doesnât even have a coach,â his mother patronises.
shoulders curling in on themselves, jongho hesitantly voices, âi told you last month that we got a coach.â
âi forgot,â she brushes him off, âand it must not be a very important competition then, seeing as it isnât worth remembering.â
âthereâs prize money,â he reveals. maybe if he can bring some of it home for his parents, they will recognise his efforts.
she sceptically probes, âis it national? international?â
ânoâŠregionals.â
âis it ranked at least?â
âitâs just an entry-level competition for rookie teams,â jongho trails off, discouraged and confidence in shambles.
his mother scoffs at his answers, none of which are the ones she wants to hear. âyou have no excuse not to win this competition, then. this is childâs play. just look at jonghyuk. heâs two years younger than you, yet already has his eyes on the olympics. if you lose, i donât want to hear about itâdonât bring shame to our family.â
âokay,â jongho mumbles, but his answer is only heard by the beeping dial of the ended callâŠand the rest of the boys it seems, if not apparent by the sombre hush that has settled over the room and the worried lips that he sees when he looks up.
yeosangâs mouth parts, the youngerâs name on the tip of his tongue, but then coach yeon enters the locker room and calls for their attention. jongho gives them a reassuring smile before setting his phone beside him on the bench and directing his gaze to their coach, grateful for the distraction. it leaves yeosang and the others with no choice but to drop it for now.
coach yeon erases the old scribbles on the roomâs whiteboard and replaces it with rough markings of the hockey rink. he drags the magnets into the different zones, each one representative of a player, as he goes over the final lineup and their respective positions based on the opposing team they have been pooled against.
âstay strong on the offensive and maintain a 2-1-2 formation where possibleâyeosang, i want you up there with hongjoong and put pressure on the other team. if they gain puck possession, both of you fall back to where wooyoung is and maintain 3-2.â
the three forwards nod and coach yeon touches one of the magnets positioned on the playerâs bench. âjongho, youâll come on for your shift during the second period. whoever you replace will come back in later to sub the other wing. yeosang and wooyoung, you should both be playing again during the third period.â
âyes, coach,â jongho acknowledges.
coach yeon continues on to review their game plan and hongjoong steps up to assist with detailing their different strategic plays. to jongho though, their words sound like he is listening from underwater as his mind involuntary drifts off. it is a small saving grace that his parents do not care for his match, because it means that they will not see that he is not part of the starting lineup.
for seven of the people in the locker room, winning the competition is an aspiration, but for one of them it is an expectation. and for the remaining individual, the competition in itself is an opportunity, but for an entirely different reason.
winter, present: regular season
inevitably, you find out. when discrepancies start to occur between training, pre-game meetings and the actual games, it is only a matter of time before you start to notice them.
it starts off with the uncommon plays that are simply a response to the game situationâones that are dire and not often brought up prior to them actually occurring. during their fourth regular game of the season, the red devils are behind by two goals. the last period is almost over when they miraculously gain the power advantage after two of the opposing players are sent to the penalty box in quick succession.
before you realise what is happening, hongjoong gives his team a signal and both yunho and mingi on defence and san in the goal all rush forward to attack with the wings. you can only watch with wide eyes as they risk an empty net in the hopes of scoring two much-needed goals to even the playing field.
wooyoung manages to score one with a quick shot, but with the release of the opponents from the penalty box, their advantage is put to an end and they ultimately finish the match with a loss. you do not dwell too much on their sudden change in tactics despite the lack of communication with you, because you understand that every single game requires a different approach. sometimes, there is no time to strategise, only time to act.
but one occurrence turns into two, and two turns into several. and when, during one of their matches the week prior, jongho and wooyoung swap positions on the left and right sides of the rink as soon as the youngest replaces yeosangâs shift, it becomes quite conclusive that they are deliberately withholding information from you.
the boys are not brainless. it is not a coincidence for you and the team to discuss one game plan in the locker room only for it to completely change the moment they step onto the hockey rink.
you silently watch as the boys prepare for a faceoff in their defensive zone. they are currently playing against the incheon bears and the timing of the penalty puts you all on edge; the score is currently tied four to four and only twelve seconds are left on the clock. you had requested a time-out right as the referee made the call in hopes of stopping the momentum of the opposing team and to tell the boys to play defensively for this faceoff.
âplay it safe. stall for the last twelve seconds and drag the game into overtime,â you had ordered.
the incheon bears have made a shift change with their player number four coming on for the faceoff, their right wing who has low stamina but terrifyingly accurate shots. he is responsible for most of his teamâs goals and several other scoring attempts that san had only just managed to block. you are also almost certain that they will be aggressively body checking your players to make this faceoff count for them. your forwards have to play safelyânot just for the sake of the gameâs score.
at your defensive suggestion, san had nodded in agreement with you, âforwards need to make passes with sure lanesânothing that can risk getting intercepted. go for the reverse setup play if you guys can.â
âwe donât need to take this into overtime,â hongjoong had started to argue, âother than number four, the rest of their offence is weak. as long as we break past him, we have an opportunity to score.â
âcaptainââ
the whistle blows before mingi can give his two cents, the mere thirty seconds for the time-out far too short, and the boys hurry to enter the rink again. hongjoong leans in quickly to say something to them before they disperse into their positions and mingi glances at you, almost guiltily.
you do not have the confidence that your team will listen. san may have seen the advantages in favouring a defensive play, but he is not the one who will decide which direction the puck will go when the referee drops it onto the ice. hongjoong is.
the hand of the referee raises to signal the start of the faceoff and both teamâs centre forwards lower their stance. then the puck hits the ice. hongjoongâs nimble reflexes help him to snap his wrist and twist the puck away from the incheon bearâs player, wooyoung already surging ahead with explosive strides towards the other end of the rink. but just as you fear, the opponentâs left wing thunders at hongjoong with horrifying speed, intention solely to bowl him over onto the iceânot to steal the puck.
âfuck, captain!â you yell, heart leaping up into your throat as it cuts off your breath.
hongjoongâs eyes snap upwards and darken, jaws aching from the force with which he grinds his teeth together despite his mouthguard. he suddenly pivots on the edges of his skates and shifts his weight to only just narrowly miss the body check, then flicks the puck away before another player can knock him down.
he does not need to look before passing to where he knows wooyoung will be, years of synergy allowing their plays to connect seamlessly. except incheon bearâs number four has predicted their exact play, having been watching from the benches and noting your forwardsâ preference for aggressive attacks.
âshit,â yunho curses under his breath, ice shaving under his skates from the accelerating force of his strides towards the puck. he is not going to make it in time. âmingi!â
seonghwa jolts up to his feet from the playerâs bench, chest mid-inhale with apprehension at the captainâs pass. the puck is intercepted within the blink of an eye and with a well-timed punch turn around yunhoâs attempt to regain possession, the rival teamâs number four makes a shot for the goal.
it is too fast for mingiâs stick to blockâarm still stretching out with desperationâand although san drops down to his knees in hopes of barricading the goal with his leg pads, the trajectory of the puck arcs higher than he had predicted.
as the puck soars past san and hits the netting of the goal, the buzzer sounds in tandem with the eruption of cheers around the rink. all around, the incheon bears swarm towards their number four in joyous celebration. mingi leans over to rest his hands on his knees from both exhaustion and defeat, and the other boys stand in similar stances as the outcome of the game registers in their tired minds.
in an attempt to cheer them up despite his own disappointment, seonghwa half-heartedly smiles at his boys as they slowly start to trudge their way off the rink. âwe played well, boys. it was unlucky that our pass got intercepted, but we can do better next time.â
âgood thing it isnât the playoffs yet,â yunho tries to joke, âso weâre still in the competition.â
nobody cracks a smile and wooyoungâs face is dark, hand grabbing the walls in support to favour his left foot whilst lifting his skates over the slight ledge of the bench door. noting his slight limp, san quietly murmurs in worry, âdid you tape your ankle?â
wooyoung shakes his head. âi ran out. forgot to buy some yesterday.â
âmake sure you ice it tonight then, okay?â san gently supports him by the elbow to the benches so they can loosen the laces of their skates and grab their things before heading to the locker room.
you look away to flip through the notebook in your hand instead, trying to calm the shaking of your hands. ice hockey is a contact sport and you cannot protect the players from every single collision, but that last body check that hongjoong had been unprepared for still has acid pooling into your mouth. you scratch the score â4-5â onto a page filled with their scores from this season thus far. a quick calculation tells you that the red devils have just as many losses as they have wins, which in all honesty, is not looking good.
thisâŠconflict needs to be cleared with the teamâwith hongjoong. you cannot let this concealment of tactics and blatant changing of strategies right in your face continue any longer, because at the rate they are going, they may not even make it into the playoffs. and as you make eye contact with san, who has been staring despondently at the puck that still lies in his goal, you know that you must clear the air for the team, too. the last thing you need is for their own teamwork to fall apart because their differing opinions on your coaching starts to drive a wedge between them.
san stills when you break your gaze and glance away to pivot on your heels in the direction of the changerooms. from the way your mouth thins and neck becomes rigid, he is quite certain you are not happyâand rightfully so, san must admit. he stalls time by slipping off his bulky gloves and freeing his hands up to remove his helmet and mouthguard too.
noting that the other boys have grabbed most of their belongings, san heads off first to meet you, knowing that they will follow him soon after. he walks down the corridor easily balancing on his skates and rounds the corner to their locker room. except the sight that greets him has his feet halting and taking a step back behind the doorway.
your hand is deep in one of their bags. san is unsure whose bag it is, but the brief glimpse of the black canvas bag he caught is enough to tell him that it is one of theirs. although he is not making any accusations, he also cannot think of a reason as to why you would be rummaging through their bags.
âwhy are you just standing there?â
jonghoâs voice startles him and he mumbles, ânothing,â before stepping through the door with the rest of his team. you are sitting on a bench in front of an empty locker now and if he did not know better, san would think that he had imagined the last minute. he glances discreetly at the bag you had been poking through and recognises it as wooyoungâs.
gingerly seating himself in front of his own locker, san waits on edge as mingi also grasps the atmosphere and sits too. gradually, the boys read the room with tactful glances and linger on their feet or on the benches. all except for one.
âwhat was that?â you cut through the silence with a directed question at hongjoong.
the captain continues to toss his gloves into his unzipped bag at the bottom of his locker before proceeding to unlace his skates, not once turning to look at you.
âwhat was what?â
you know fully well that he is aware of what you are talking about but you decide to humour him as you elaborate, âthat last faceoff. i clearly told you to play defensively, but you went against it to try for a goal. and let me guess, you told the others to ignore what i said.â
âand so what if i did?â hongjoong challenges. yeosangâs wide eyes dart from side to side and yunho watches on uneasily as his captain finally turns to glare at you. âin that momentâas a player on the rinkâi saw the opportunity and took it. if there is a chance to attack, then my team takes it. we donât run away like cowards.â
the successive jabs at your athletic retirement cause a lick of phantom heat to wrap around your shoulder. your jaw grinds as you hold yourself back from biting the bait. âthen iâm curious as to what opportunity you saw every time you decided to withhold game tactics from me, or every time you changed the strategy the moment you and your team stepped foot onto the rink.â
âmaybe we would respect and listen to your coaching if it actually suited the playing style of our team. heavy defence may have worked for the grey eagles, but i think you need to reevaluate your abilities as a coach because it seems like you are forgetting that we are not them. forcing us to play defensively like your past team is not going to work for shit, coach,â hongjoong mocks.
you scoff to the side, questioning your own ears. it borders on a laugh, because that is his reason? you have been adjusting their playing style not only based on the situation that arises each game, but in general for their own good. earning his respect be damned, you will not stand for this.
you return the same scornful tone, âwell then, captain, considering you just lost the fucking match because you were too arrogant to defend for twelve fucking seconds, i think you should also reevaluate yourself. are you acting in the best interest of your team, or are you acting in the way that best strokes your own ego? and let me remind youâif you suffer an injury, your whole team suffers with you.
âif you do not have the decency to at least tell me what you have discussed with the boys so that i can adjust the plays accordingly, then i think the shit results of your games so far speak for themselves. teams have a coach for a reason whether you like it or notâŠor maybe i should say, whether you trust them or not,â you snap.
running your stressed fingers through your hair, you tear your eyes away from hongjoongâs defiant eyes. the two youngest avoid your gaze, whereas yunho and yeosang simply stare at you with their jaws slack at a loss for words. the fire within you almost quenches when your eyes skim over san, mingi and even seonghwa, who are fiddling with their jerseys with guilt.
the room suddenly feels too small and too stuffy. âchange. the bus will be waiting outside,â you mumble, then you leave without a further word.
nobody in the room moves in the wake of the argument, not even hongjoong, who continues to bore holes in the doorway that you have just disappeared through. yunhoâs eyes awkwardly dart back and forth between hongjoong and the other boys before they land on the bench you had been sitting on.
the notebook you are always holding is still there, left behind in your haste to leave. he stands up to grab it, turning on his heels to chase after you when the open pages catch his eye. âwoah,â yunho breathes out, double-taking and bringing the notebook closer towards him to read the contents. âthis is insane.â
you have marked down not only their score for every single game they have played this season, but you have also tracked the statistics of who has scored, assisted, or successfully defended a shot. yunho flips back through the pages as the other boys come to crowd around him. there are logs of their major games from the past five years, diagrams of their faceoff plays and formations, analyses of their strengths in games won and similarly, analyses of their weaknesses in games they have lost.
âoh, fuck,â mingi curses when yunho flips to the more recent pages and they see that you have compiled the same details and information, only more concisely, for every single opponent team the red devils have played against this season. there is no way of seeing thisâhours upon hours of hard workâand still questioning your intentions as their coach. âi think we owe coach a huge fuckinâ apology.â
hongjoong immediately furrows his eyebrows with displeasure. âare you taking her side, mingi?â
âcaptain,â mingi deliberately calls. it is at times like this where being the only logical thinker in the team has its merits. it may be harsh, but mingi must draw the line between their professional and personal life. this dispute must stay strictly within the bounds of their career without blurring the lines over into their romantic involvement with one another, otherwise things could get messy real fast.
mingi stares at the captain as he reasons, âthis isnât about taking sides. from a solely rational point of view, i think it may have been better for us to play safe and defend like coach had suggested.â
from beside him, san nods in agreement. mingi continues, âand iâm not just talking about todayâthere were a lot of times when coachâs plays might have worked out better than bulldozing ahead with offence. yeah, weâve won a few games but weâve also lost just as many. how many of those could we have won if we had trusted coach?â
yunho backs him up whilst gesturing vaguely between the both of them and san, âitâs easier for the three of us to see from defence, but their forwards were already close to intercepting our faceoffs quite a few times that game.â
hongjoongâs immediate thought is to defend himself, because he is their captain and their centre forward; the one who leads them into opportunities to score and win. he knows that every single time he chooses an aggressive play, it is at the risk of weaker defence. the odds have never deterred him, though, because he has always been confident in his abilitiesâin his teamâs abilities.
but if, even now with the palpable experience of losing because of his own decision, it still does not deter him from taking risks in a situation where offence may be his downfall, then is he confidentâŠor overconfident?
it is quiet for a moment. hongjoong swallows the urge to justify against their opinionsâagainst your opinionsâinstead looking around at his team. he meets jonghoâs round eyes and he remembers one of the very reasons why he is so committed to leading the red devils to the gold trophy. why, if he is becoming a hurdle instead to their victory, then he needs to change. âwhat does everybody else think? seonghwa?â
âweâve been wary of y/n all this time, but the more games we play and especially afterâŠâ the alternate captain vaguely gestures in the air, â...today, we should really work with her instead of relying on ourselves. weâve seen her notebook, too, and i think thatâs more than enough for us to see that the effort and resolve she places in our team is genuine. we need to acknowledge that and apologise.â
ânot even coach cho went to these lengths, and most definitely not coach yeon,â yeosang shrugs as he offhandedly comments.
spurred on by everybody else, san carefully voices the thought that has been lingering on his mind, âi think itâs time to tell her the truth. we owe her that much.â
the truth. the wounds that not even coach cho knows of.
hongjoongâs distrust in you may have initially been true to his desire to protect his boys from something like that from happening again. but he is now realising that you may have seen right through him. perhaps at some point in time, it became unwillingness to trust you, blinded by his prideful title as the demon king of the ice rink but at the expense of his team under the guise of wanting to safeguard them.
exhaling shakily, voice thick with regret, hongjoong accepts, âiâve let you all down, havenât i?â
âno,â yunho gently rebukes. âletting us down would be refusing to listen to us. we trust you for a reason, hongjoong.â
not just as a captain, but as everything else too.
seonghwa wraps an arm comfortingly around him. with hongjoongâs demonic presence on the ice once he is in the zone, it is easy to forget that he actually has a shorter stature than all of them. âthatâs right, we trust you,â seonghwa affirms. âthe next step is for us to trust our coach as well. weâre a team, but it isnât complete without our coach.â
âand this apology isnât yours alone to bear,â yunho reminds. âlike seonghwa said, weâre a team and we all have fault in our behaviour towards y/n. if iâm honest, i had a shitty attitude and gave her a hard time at the start too,â he admits, wincing at the memory.
yunho is not the only one who grimaces as they reflect on their own actionsâwhether they happened when you were first introduced to the team, during your first training together, or even up until todayâs game. but wooyoung, who has been quiet throughout the entire ordeal, still has a niggling doubt: one that is most personal to him in comparison to the rest of the team.
wooyoung reveals his thoughts, âbut what about her choice to stop playing? i still canât think of a good reason that i can respect her for having retired.â
âthen we ask her,â mingi proposes.
jongho nods, also curious to know whether there is more to your decision than you have let on. âtoday, though? we donât really want to come off as accusatory or anything. it might be good to give her some space today.â
âwhatâs our schedule looking like tomorrow? training?â
everyone looks at seonghwa, the most likely person to know their schedule off by heart. he does, and he scratches his head as he recalls, âno, recovery day. low-intensity cardio in the morning andâŠa team meeting with coach in the afternoon.â
âtomorrow it is, then,â hongjoong concludes. there are hums of agreement and the decision appears to appease wooyoung enough for the boys to start dispersing, heading to their lockers to finally start changing out of their gear.
wooyoung tosses his helmet and gloves onto the bench in front of his locker before sitting with a sharp but discreet inhale. he carefully loosens the laces on his skates, easing the left one off his foot slowly. the relief is immediate and his fingertips gingerly touch the throbbing area around his ankle. it is not too swollen, but he will need to ice it when they get back to their apartment and he will definitely need to buy more tape.
he sheds off the rest of his gear and uniform, leaving them on the bench too to air out while he takes a quick shower. as he roughly towels his wet hair afterwards, he drags his kit bag further out to make it easier to toss everything in.
âhuh?â wooyoung makes a noise of confusion when he unzips the bag, hand immediately reaching in to grab the item that has caught his eye. it is partially covered by his hoodie but he would be able to recognise the packaging anywhere.
âwhatâs wrong?â san asks, glancing over.
the younger brandishes the brand new roll of strapping tape he has found in his bag, the frown etched across his face slowly relaxing into amused exasperation as he reasons, âi must not have seen this in my bag all along.â
san is about to snort and make fun of his inattentiveness, but a sudden thought stuns the smile off his face. it was not that wooyoung had managed to miss the spare roll in his bag. it wasâ
ây/n,â he quietly exhales with realisation.
at wooyoungâs questioning what?, san looks at him with upturned eyebrows. âthe tapeâcoach was the one who put it in your bag, right before we all walked in here.â
âthisâŠshe gave it to me?â wooyoungâs face drops, remorse evident in the thickness of his voice. âbut why?â
san gently squeezes his shoulder with a smile, simply answering, âbecause sheâs our coach.â he turns to zip up his own kit bag and leaves wooyoung to digest the revelation. the boy is quiet for the rest of the time, teeth gnawing at the inside of his cheek as he stares ahead and absentmindedly follows the rest of his team out of the locker room.
when they exit the ice arena, they do not expect to see you. and yet, there you stand beside their bus waiting stonily with your jacket zipped up and hands in your pockets. you mentally count them off without acknowledging them as they start to store their kit bags under the bus and board. yeosang gets on first, taking a seat near the front of the bus as usual. he watches from the window as you wait for the rest of the boys.
you follow jongho up the stairs, the last to load his kit bag, and tell the driver that you are all good to leave. yeosang sits a little straighter as he tucks his small backpack further under the seat in front of him with his feet, having left the seat beside him empty. but before he can open his mouth with an offer of a seat, you have already sat right behind the driver. yeosang leans back into the cushions of his seat, unfamiliar with the sense of disappointment he feels.
the ride back from the competition venueâmuch less after a lost gameâis always quiet, players both physically and mentally exhausted from the strain. this time, though, it is strikingly silent, but you appreciate itâneed it.
you stare out of the window as the trees flicker past like a repetitive motion film. most of their leaves have already fallen off, littering the ground in a blur of tragic glory. and with the beginning of winter, the trees will soon become completely bare, bringing about the period of time when there is nothing but bleak emptiness.
winter, 2019: regular season
â2019 ice hockey rookie stars tournament: team standingsâ
hongjoong stares at the printed piece of paper with seonghwa at his side, where the results of all the teamâs round-robin games have been taped up onto the walls of the stadium. hongjoong does not even bother reading from the top, eyes going straight down to the bottom of the page instead.
the red devils are dead last, having lost every single one of their matches. even the korean penguins, who had nil wins either, had managed to beat them earlier today, ranking them at the lowest of all teams. it is fucking humiliating and hongjoong hates that the sport that had brought him and his boys all together, that they had immeasurable love for, is now one that fills them with shame and indignity.
nobody else but the two captains of the team have decided to look at the rankings. they had all already known towards the end of the regular season that they would not stand a chance at making it into the playoffs. and yet, hongjoong and seonghwa need to see the results for themselves. it is almost masochistic, forcing themselves to look at the fruitless results of their hard work in their first competition that has so devastatingly crushed their morality.
seonghwa picks at his cuticles fretfully and wonders whether he made the wrong decision to give up his education in pursuit of becoming an athlete. he thinks of his parents, who had encouraged him with supportive smiles and offers of financial support the moment he brought up the ideaâwas it all in vain?
âare you two done looking?â
both of the boys turn at the question to find a captain with his team waiting to look at the standings.
âyeah, sorry,â hongjoong mumbles before stepping aside to yield his spot. the players swarm forwards and he is pushed further back away from the list like a physical representation of his distance from the playoffs.
somebody from the other team yells, âwe made it! weâre in the playoffs!â and they simultaneously break out into cries and cheers as they celebrate together.
hongjoong watches on bitterly, wishing with every cell in his body that that was him and his boys. how is he going to walk back into the locker room as their captain when all of his boys have eyes that are rimmed red and cheeks that are blotchy from despairâwhen there are captains like that who have successfully led their team to at least a chance at winning the competition.
the feeling of a pinky slowly hooking around his own draws hongjoong out of his pain. âletâs go back,â seonghwa murmurs, tugging him away from the still-celebrating team. together, both of them start to walk back through the hallways to their locker room.Â
âarenât we down here?â seonghwa questions, standing at the t-intersection that hongjoong has absentmindedly walked straight past.
âoh, yeah. sorry,â hongjoong apologises and begins to backtrack. his ears suddenly perk up at the sound of a voice. âwait, doesnât that sound like coach?â
before seonghwa can respond, hongjoong has turned around yet again towards the voice in search of their coach. seonghwa hurries to catch up and that is when he hears it too.
âhave you transferred the money?â
âyes, i wired you the remaining amount the moment we won,â a deeper, unrecognisable voice reassures.
hongjoongâs footsteps falter, brows knitting together and head cocking to one side. he gestures for seonghwa to slow down, pressing a finger on his other hand to his lips. both of them creep forward silently.
the unfamiliar voice probes, âyour teamâyouâre sure they donât suspect anything?â
hongjoong and seonghwa do not need to see him to confirm their suspicions when they hear the unmistakable laughter of coach yeon. through the gravelly sound, he mocks, âthey have no fucking clue even though theyâve lost every single one of their games. theyâre dumber than fucking sheep. their captain tells me everything about their plays and strategies and they never question it when i change things around.â
seonghwa clutches the back of hongjoongâs jersey with a death grip, knowing that without it, his captain will punch coach yeonâs face into a bloody mess. but as much as their coach deserves it, it is not worth the disciplinary action that will inevitably follow, likely suspension, becauseâ
âplus, even if they do somehow find out, what can they do about it? bullshit, thatâs what. they have no evidence and theyâre not going to risk blowing this up and ruining their own careers instead,â coach yeon boasts smugly. âlosing like that as a rookie group in their first year out is completely normal. no one will believe them, and no coach is going to want their team after that because of their âshitty sportsmanshipâ or out of fear of being accused in the same way if they lose again.â
at coach yeonâs words, seonghwa scrambles to put them into context with his dread-riddled mind. the echoing pounding in his ears tells him that he has just heard something that was never meant to be known. he does not even notice that the voices start to grow distant as the two men begin to walk off, but hongjoong does.
the trembling grip that is still on the back of his jersey grounds hongjoong enough not to throw everything away and sprint up to coach yeon with vile words and heated fists, but he also cannot do nothing. hongjoong peers around the corner before seonghwa can counteract his movement, desperate to identify who exactly coach yeon is talking to. except the revelation has him reeling, hands white from how hard his fingers dig into his palmâa stark contrast to the deep scarlet of flames that leap forth from his murderous eyes.
because the person who is walking beside coach yeon is the coach of the korean penguins. hongjoong and his boys have not been losing because of their skills they believed to be fucking shitâcoach yeon has been fucking ensuring they lose.
for money.
winter, present: regular season
you stand on the balcony of your apartment. the sliding glass doors are shut behind you to keep the heat trapped inside, but for now you welcome the refreshing cold of the winter chill as you simply observe.
below on the streets, the miniature specks of people and cars mill around as if you are watching a game simulation. it is strangely humbling to think that each and every one of the people you see are living their own lives, completely distinct to yours with different yet very real problems of their own, but in the grand scheme of the cosmos, you are all insignificant.
you wonder what concern the people holding their coffee are plagued with right now; what problem the people crossing the street are facing. you wonder, if you were to tell them of your worries and they were to tell you of theirs, would you curse or thank the heavens?
the phone in your hand buzzes. you look to see if it is from coach cho and manage a small smile of relief when the notification is indeed from him.
apologies y/n, i was busy earlier. i can call now if you still need me?
you send an affirmative reply, then slide to answer the call that comes through. âhi coach, sorry to bother you.â
âno, youâre alright. is everything okay?â
you hesitate before revealing, â...i messed things up with the boys.â
âthe team?â his voice goes gentle, fatherly nature extending to you too. âwhat happened?â
âhongjoong and i had an argument today after the game because he keeps changing the teamâs plays without letting me know, or even after weâve agreed on something else. it was only meant to be a talk, but then things escalated and we ended up fighting. i justâi donât know what you saw in me, coach, because i donât think iâm fit for the boys,â you ramble. âtheyâre not listening to me, they probably donât even like me, and weâre going terribly with the season.â
you take a breath as you timidly admit, âi donât think weâre going to make it into the playoffs and itâs going to be my fault.â
âhey,â coach cho grounds you, âmaking the playoffs would be great, yes, but the reality is that most teams donât. and youâre still very young yourselfâthis is your, whatâŠfifth year of coaching?â
throat too sticky to formulate a response, you simply hum.
âwhen i first started coaching, i was older than you and it was still a steep learning curve during my first ten years. i believed that coaches deserved the utmost respect and that my opinion was final. theyâre my players, so of course i should be the one laying down the laws,â he chuckles. âbut growing up was realising that whilst the respect is still there, it needs to be mutual. coaching a team is not a hierarchy of âi command, you listenâ, but a show of leadership with the captain at the front of the teamânot on top of them.â
his words strike a chord within you. coaching the boys was frustrating because they were not listening to you. but it should never have been a case of who listens to whoâit should always have been a reciprocated relationship of everyone listening to one other.
as if he can physically feel the guilt that is starting to settle in the pit of your stomach, coach cho draws your attention to something else. âremember what i told you when we met the team for the first time? why i chose you specifically?â
âbecause of our similar playing styles?â you recall.
âexactly,â he confirms, âyou know best the strategies and plays that work, and what their strengths and weaknesses are, because they were also your own. you need to be a coach to their playing style, not the other way aroundâthey shouldnât be a player to your coaching style.â
you cannot help but worry, âwhat if they get injured?â
ây/n, this is where your similarities can either be your biggest flaw or your greatest asset as a coach. no matter how safely they play, there will always be a risk of injury. that is just how the sport works and you know that the best. you can teach them to assess the risk and pull back if they really need to, but ultimately, there is no way of eliminating the risk completely.â coach cho pauses, then asks, âif you could meet your younger self, would you make yourself change your playing style?â
would you? as you imagine what you would tell your past self if you had the chance to, you find that you do not have an answer. perhaps for the sake of a prolonged career, you would. but then would it be your passion and skills that are playing the game, or your fears and worries?
if you cannot come to a decision even for yourself, then it is completely unfair for you to restrain the boys within the cages of what you view as safety for their own good. harnessing the defensive skills may have been functional for the grey eagles, but like hongjoong said, you are coaching the red devils now and it is not working for them. you must come to terms that you cannot protect the boys at every opportunityâconsciously or unconsciouslyâyou need to be a coach to them.
coach cho, aware that you have come to a conclusion, asks you one final question, âhave you told the boys why you retired?â
âno, not yet,â you shake your head. you already have an idea of what he is going to say to you next.
âi think itâs time for you to tell them,â he advises. âremember, y/n, sometimes you need to be vulnerable with them first before you can make things right.â
after coach cho ends the call, you do not make a move to go back inside the apartment. you stay standing on your balcony, arms folded as you lean against the handrail listening to the faint rumble of traffic and hustle of busy activity. life goes on, and so will yours; you just have to make it count.
the trees on the streets may be stripped bare and lonely throughout winter, but eventually you learn to appreciate its nothingness. it is a necessity in order to start afresh.
mingi stares at the blinking cursor that sits in the open search bar. it has been empty for the last twenty minutes since he started up his laptop, wondering whether it would be an invasion of privacy for him to look you up on the internet.
he makes up his mind. he knows that he was the one to tell wooyoung only mere hours ago that they would ask you about your decision to retire tomorrow at the meeting, but mingi supposes it would not hurt to simply see what sort of athlete you were like before.
typing your full name into the search engine, mingi hits âenterâ and waits for the results to appear. he combs through the first several links quickly. they all have the same information; ice hockey databases and websites that detail your age, nationality, physical stats and position, but the sections that usually list your team and agency are now blank.
mingi is surprised to learn you were also a centre forward. he scrolls down to your game logs and match statistics that span from 2014 to 2019. you have won an impressive number of championships, most notably the under-18 and under-21 womenâs ice hockey league. they are both international competitions and mingi is not sure how your reputation has flown under all of their radars.
frowning, he goes back to the search engine and clicks on the next page in an attempt to find more information. it is not until he clicks yet again to the next page that he finds a low-reputed news article from almost eight years ago where you are the main subject.
ây/n l/n, youngest player of âblack catsâ, wins ice hockey championship at the age of sixteenâ the headline reads. there is not much to the article, but it outlines your admirable achievement at your young age as a rising prodigy in the ice hockey scene. mingi agrees, since he knows that you also go on to win another international competition a few years after that. just as he is about to close the tab, there is a recommended link that catches his eye.
he hovers his cursor over it. the hyperlinked headline does not explicitly say your name, but the phrasing really only alludes to one athlete considering it is a recommended link on your article. mingi does not know whether he wants to click on it, though, because he is afraid of confirming it is you.
and if it isâŠthen the others will also need to see this too.
âhongjoong, guys, come look at this,â mingi calls out, balancing his laptop on his forearm as he walks out into the open living room. the others look up from where they are sitting or emerge from out of their rooms at his summon.
âwhatâs this?â hongjoong reaches out to receive the laptop and places it on the table. his eyes skim the screen, trying to make sense of what mingi is showing them.
mingi points to the hyperlink he had been mulling over. âi think we need to look at this.â
solemnity washes over the boys as their curious gazes dull and darken, realisation of what exactly they are reading dawning upon them. all at once, their hearts clench in solidarity. hongjoong clicks on the link. the only sound that permeates the silence is the rhythmic tick of the clock on the wall. nobody talks. nobody moves.
ice hockey star announces retirement following shoulder injury june 18, 2019 star player y/n l/n, centre forward of the âblack catsâ, has announced her retirement from professional ice hockey today. her decision follows lingering issues after suffering from a rotator cuff tear during the grand finals of this yearâs under-21 womenâs ice hockey league. l/n has been under the ice hockey spotlight ever since her win in the under-18âs league as the youngest player on her team. she is well-known for her offensive threat to the opponents, bold playing style and unparalleled skill breaking through the lines of defence. during the grand finals in april, l/n was body checked from the side by âpolar bearsââ kim hyejin. although full-body checking is illegal in womenâs hockey, it is not uncommon during the heat of competitions. l/n suffered a severe right rotator cuff tear and is reported to have received open surgery last month. l/n did not provide further details about her recovery, however stated that she plans to focus on her physical rehabilitation in the meantime.
the glare of the screen stares back at the boys as they finally understand exactly why you had retired and why you had come back as a coachâyou were unable to fully step away from the sport you so loved with your entire life.
âcoach wasnât telling us to play defensively at all the crucial times just for the sake of the game strategyâŠâ seonghwa grasps.
â...but because she didnât want the same thing to happen to us,â hongjoong finishes. one of your heated remarks during your argument with him suddenly resounds in his mind: and let me remind youâif you suffer an injury, your whole team suffers with you. you had been reliving your own demons every single time hongjoong and his boys were playing aggressively on the ice. âfuck,â he mutters.
mingi leans down a little. âwait, see if there are any other articles about this.â
fingers dancing across the keyboard, hongjoong opens up a new tab. another quick search of your name with the keywords âinjuryâ and âretirementâ yields no further articles. mingi is certain you would have had more media coverage considering you had suffered an injury at the rising peak of your prodigious career, so he finds it strange that there is close to no information about this.
âit almost looks as if somebody had the articles purged from the internet,â mingi observes.
jongho nods with furrowed brows, âmaybe y/n? but why would she go to the length to remove them?â
âi mean, wooyoung didnât exactly go around flaunting off his injury to the media. maybe she didnât want the attention anymore,â yeosang guesses.
yunho nudges wooyoung playfully as he comments, âno offence to you, but none of us are exactly famous enough for the media to take interest in our injuries.â
âi think the real question is why coach didnât tell us that her injury was the reason why she stopped playing,â seonghwa wonders, âit was never really a choice like she made it out to be.â
none of them know the answer. hongjoong slowly closes the laptop, exhaling deeply, âweâve got a lot of things to clear up tomorrowâŠand a lot of apologising. iâm going to sleep early. you all should too.â
with that, he gets out of his seat and disappears into his bedroom. hongjoongâs mind is heavy and crowded and he knows he is going to be awake for a while.
nobody sleeps well that night. especially wooyoung.
spring, 2023: playoffs
âwhat do you mean i canât compete in the playoffs?â
âyou have a fractured ankle, wooyoung. the playoffs are honestly the least of your concerns and if you keep straining yourself like this, it wonât just be the playoffs that you canât compete inâitâll be the rest of your life,â coach cho admonishes.
âbut this is our first proper championship, coach,â wooyoung begs, âyou have to let me play.â
coach cho hates that he has to say no and if he could swap ankles with his player, he would do so in a heartbeat. âthis isnât a choice. you physically cannot play. what are you going to do out there on the ice? crawl?â
âfuck, coach, you donât understand. it was so hard for us to get to this point. this means everything to me, fuck, please,â wooyoung pleads between heaving breaths.
âiâm sorry, wooyoung,â coach cho apologises, leaving no further room for argument as the other boys divert their gazes to the floor.
hongjoong gently squeezes wooyoungâs shoulder. âthe doctor said that your cast can come off in about eight weeks and if itâs looking good, you can gradually join in on any light training when itâs off-season.â
wooyoung does not care because in eight weekâs time the playoffs will already be over. he knows he is being unreasonable and that there is no chance he will be able to set foot in an ice rink within the next two months. but his heart and mind are operating separately and the only thing his heart can see is the opportunity of playing in the championships slipping right out of his grasp.
he is already angry at himself for getting injured in the first place but it is not enough to quell wooyoungâs raging inferno. so he does the only thing he can think of in the momentâhe spits out his anger with a venomous, âi hate you all.â
it hurts the boys more to see wooyoung hurting and coach cho speaks up on their behalf, âi would rather you hate us now than for you to hate yourself in the future because you traded decades of your career for this one playoff.â
wooyoung jerks his head away defiantly, but they know he is only trying to hide his tears. unable to watch any longer, san moves in closer and pulls the younger into his arms.
âfuck off, san. i donât need you.â
san swallows the hurt in his chest because he knows there is no truth behind wooyoungâs words. âi know you donât,â he offers, âbut i need you. so just let me stay.â
wooyoungâs body sags as all of the fight slips out of him in the form of shuddering sobs. san embraces him tightly, as if he has picked up all the pieces of the other and only a hug can make him whole again.
âiâm sorry,â wooyoung chokes out.
san shakes his head with reassuring hushes, âdonât be. you focus on recovering and weâll take it from here.â
like that, wooyoungâs anger is quenched and the team goes on to compete in the playoffs without him. but in the absence of anger comes other emotions, jealousy and insecurity the ugliest of them all. wooyoung despises the bitter taste in his mouth as he sits on the playerâs bench outside of the rink each game, only able to helplessly watch his team advance further in the playoffs without him.
and as much as wooyoung wants them to win, he also does not want them to win, because if they can win the championships without him playing as their left wing, then do they really need him at all? he never gets to find out the answer though. they lose in the quarter finals.
wooyoung does not tell anybody about the ill relief he feelsâŠand he vows to take that secret with him to the grave.
winter, present: regular season
the moment you walk into kqâs meeting room, a rehearsed apology for the team on the tip of your tongue, you realise that something is off. not necessarily wrong, per se; just off.
all the boys are sitting around the table as usual, though the overhead projector that is routinely already set up with video footage of their recent games has been put on standby mode. but the thing that unconsciously makes your hackles rise is the expression they all nurse on their faces, strangely familiar yet foreign at the same time. it is familiar in the sense that people have looked at you this way in the past, but it is foreign in the sense that it has never come from the boys before.
âhi, coach,â hongjoong clears his throat awkwardly, opting to look at the wall behind you instead of your eyes as if even he knows this is the first time he has ever addressed you as such. âwe had aâŠtalk last night and thought we should probably clear up a few things before we discuss the actual games.â
although you share the same sentiment as they do, hongjoongâs words put you on guard. gingerly, you lower yourself into an empty seat across from him. âi also have a couple of things to say, but you guys start,â you cue.
hongjoong glances at seonghwa beside him, who in turn gives him a miniscule shrug. neither of them know how to bring it up with you as they are afraid of saying the wrong thing. thankfully, mingi steps in, not one to beat around the bush.
âwhy didnât you tell us about your injury?â he asks directly.
with mingiâs question, you are suddenly able to place their expression. the boys look at you warily as if you are a wounded animal they are afraid will run away. you loathed the expression years ago when it was from your coach, your teammates and your familyâthe constant treading on eggshells around you with pitying eyesâand you still loathe it just as much as you do now.
your prickles emerge and your instinctive reaction is to deny it. you have kept your injury a secret up until now for a reason and the unexpected confrontation has all of your sirens blaring to keep it a secret. but then you remember coach choâs adviceâyou remember the apology you had mulled over all nightâand you force your prickles to retract.
you take a breath. coach cho would not have told them about your injury, so there is only one way the boys could have found out about it. âyou read the articles, didnât you?â
mingi at least has the decency to look sheepish as he admits, âoneâŠbut there werenât any others.â
âi thought as much,â you mumble to yourself, smiling tightly. you choose not to think about how they came across the article. âi wanted them all removed and my agency managed to pull enough connections to sweep the articles under the rug, but i should have known that in this day and age it would be impossible to get rid of any media completely.â
the question remains as to why you have chosen to keep this hidden and alsoâ
âwhy did you want them removed, though?â hongjoong furrows his brows.
you have faced countless demons in the last six years. the injury itself, the abrupt end to your golden days, and the forced reconciliation with the fact that you will never be able to play again. and yet, the demon that continues to haunt you to this day is the media spotlight that chases after you as if you are a circus animal.
you are unable to look at any of them in the eye as you finally bare yourself open to the boys. âthe articles felt belittling and shamefulâthey still do. they made me feel less as an athlete then and they make me feel less as a coach now. i worked my heart and soul to get to where i was with the skills that i had, but you donât understand just how crippling it is for all of that to be overshadowed by an injury. it was no longer a celebration of my achievements, simply because nobody cared anymore. it just became a fucking broken record of, âhow does it feel to have fallen at the peak of your career?â
âthen when i became a coach, it didnât matter how well my team performed or how hard they worked to win the championships. the question became, âhow does it feel to coach after being forced to retire because of your injury?â no matter how hard i tried, i just could not escape the hellhole of my injury.â
guilt settles in the pit of mingiâs stomach as it also does for the others. they may not have written the article, but by consuming it and searching for more, they had unknowingly joined the faceless masses of those who had hurt you.
you dig your thumbs into the flesh of your thighs to stop your voice from shaking as you continue, âthe media will not care for the achievements that myself or my players accomplish when there is something even betterâa sob story. but i do not need that kind of pity. not from athletes, not from other coaches, and most definitely not from strangers silently pitying my life from behind their newspaper or screen when i did not ask for any of it. i made people forget and i kept this all hidden because my career, be it as a coach or a former athlete, does not deserve to be reduced to that kind of shit.â
the raw honesty behind your words strikes the boys silent. what they thought they had started to understand about you, they are now realising was barely the tip of the iceberg. seonghwa wonders for just how long you have left this wound bleeding and untreated. he calls out for you sadly, âcoach, you shouldâve told us.â
when you look up, you are surprised to find wetness brimming his eyes. you feel the hot rush of emotions build up behind your own eyes but from anger, because why is he upset? what reason does he have to cry when you are the one who has suffered all this time?
your voice is biting when you respond, âand have you look down on me like everybody else? i just said, i do not need your pityââ
âitâs not pity,â a voice interrupts firmly. of all people, you least expected it to come from wooyoung. his tone stays unyielding as he holds your gaze. âweâre athletes too, y/n.â
the way he includes you in the collectiveâas an athleteâhas your glare softening immediately, replaced by the dangerous quivering of your bottom lip while he elaborates, albeit voice gentler now, ïżœïżœwe are hurting for youâwith you. it is not pity; it is standing by your side in hopes that we can help you up if you ever fall again.â
because it is okay to fall, and you will fall; wooyoung knows that the best.
you tilt your head upwards as you desperately blink back the tears that suddenly threaten to spill. the swell of emotions that had churned in your chest had not been anger but fatigue, you realise. wooyoungâs words give you sudden clarity that you are tiredâof suffering alone and in silence. you want help.
âiâm tired of hurting,â you confess quietly.
âthen let us share the hurt with you.â
the dam breaks and your tears fall freely down your cheeks. it starts off with a nod so miniscule that the boys think they have imagined it, but then slowly and surely, your head moves up and down with more conviction. âokay,â you whisper.
you had always thought that you had come to terms with your injury and the end of your career, but perhaps you are still mourning your lossâŠand perhaps that is okay. like looking into a time-warped mirror, wooyoung sees the fight slip out of your body with a sob as you apologise, âiâm sorry.â
san wants to cross the room and wrap his arms around you if it can take away even just a fraction of your hurt. but he knows that he cannot cross the boundaries of professionalism despite the intimate nature of the conversation right now, especially when you and the team are only just starting to patch things up. so instead, he opts to rub his thumb over the knuckles of wooyoungâs hand from under the table, which has slipped into his, hoping that one day he will be able to do the same for you.
âwe understand,â hongjoong answers on their behalf, âyou were doing what you needed to do in order to protect yourself.â
and if you do not realise that he says those words for himself and his team to hear too, then you will by the end of the conversation as you walk away with a newfound understanding of them.
âno, not just for that,â you shake your head, roughly swiping at your tears with the back of your hand. âit ended up negatively influencing the way i coached you guys, even if it was subconscious. i let my own trauma dictate how i wanted you to play: defensively all the time whether it was needed or not. hongjoong, you were right about me not coaching your team as your team.â
you try your damned hardest to keep your voice steady so that you can look at them properly to apologise, âiâm sorry i made it so hard to trust me as your coach.â
âokay, let me stop you right there,â yunho smiles gently, sliding a tissue box in your direction. âwe were pricks too, so half the apology is ours.â
âdonât call her a prick,â seonghwa whispers. his horrified expression relaxes when you break out into a wet chuckle.
hongjoong is glad that you are able to find something to laugh about even with your cheeks still damp and blotchy, and he finds his mouth curling into a bittersweet smile. you have been honest and vulnerable with them and now it is their turn.
âwe have something to tell you about our past coach,â he starts, drawing your gaze to him. ânot coach choâour very first coach. weâre not trying to justify that what we did as a result was okay, butâŠâ
âbut hopefully i can understand,â you finish when hongjoong hesitates. he nods and you mirror his action with a reassuring smile to encourage him to talk.
but irregardless of what they tell you, you already know that you want to understand them, because understanding is the first step to forgiving, and you want that too.
so with intermittent comments from the other boys, hongjoong reveals to you the hidden wounds they have been nursing. and as they tell you about coach yeon, how their trust in him had been misplaced, how he had betrayed it for money at the expense of their championship, and how they had then let that become mistrust in you and your reason for retiring, wooyoung finds himself quiet so that he can steal glances at you.
he can see it now. the untameable beast within you of passion for ice hockey that has been forcibly chained down to the ground with the weight of the earth. the devastating torment that must incessantly surge through you in the most debilitating waves, tenfold any anguish he felt when he was unable to compete in the playoffs. the blemished canvas of dark and ghastly emotions that you do not let see the light of day, yet continue to coexist in hidden silence.
it is there and then that wooyoung realises you and him may be more similar than he thoughtâthat you may actually understand him better than any of his seven boys.
you stop the drill.
yeosang gracefully turns in an arc whilst keeping the puck close to his stick as hongjoong and seonghwa dig their skates into the ice to brake before their momentum takes out the younger.
âletâs have jongho try using the perimeter of the rink instead of passing to yeosang this time. start the faceoff again,â you instruct.
the chorus of responses that you receive are zealous, even slightly teasing as the boys lower their voices with a, âyes, coach!â and give you small salutes with their gloved hands. you cannot help but snort and shake your head, waving at them to retake their positions.
practice is short today, since your team has a game tomorrow. the first half an hour consisted of running through offensive formations for power plays and you are now focusing on defensive penalty kills. your two captains and wooyoung are playing as the mock opponents, preparing your remaining wings and defenseman for a situation where they are down a player.
hongjoong seems to mull over a thought as he looks at the formation of his boys. âyou mentioned the team weâre playing against has a tendency to position their forwards higher up, didnât you?â he asks and when you nod, he suggests, âwhat do you think about trying the diamond formation instead? might help close some of their shooting lanes.â
with the captainâs input, you reposition yeosang further up to form the tip of the diamond, and yunho too to cover the right point whilst jongho covers the left. mingi moves in a little closer to the goal to cover the bottom of the diamond and you make sure to point out the importance of his position.
âif the opportunity arises, we can transition into a counterattack instead with 3-1. but weâll need to make sure we still cover the goal in case they turn it back over againâmingi, this will probably be you. support whoever has the puck from behind, but make sure you donât go too far forward.â
mingi answers with an affirmative and yeosang passes the puck to hongjoong for him to commence the penalty kill. at your whistle, the rink explodes into action. wooyoung and seonghwa immediately split down the perimeters to open up shooting lanes for their captain, who passes the puck off to wooyoung the moment he has cleared half the rink. with a brief adjustment of the puckâs angle, he attempts a cross-ice pass to where seonghwa is free on the other side.
with astonishing speed, jongho intercepts the puck and yells, â3-1!â he continues to barrel forward with the momentum of his explosive acceleration towards the goal as yeosang anticipates a pass and yunho joins the counterattack rush to his right. the three of your players charge forwards with adrenaline as mingi covers them from behind. jongho chips the puck over hongjoongâs stick, which is immediately taken up by yeosang. without a goaltender, he finishes it off with an easy shot into the net.
the tempo and execution of the rush surprises not just you, but the boys themselves too, who are tapping their sticks together with elated excitement at the success of the play. it may only be a simulated practice drill, but you still share in the same pride and contentment that hongjoongâs face glows at you with.
he cocks his head to the side with a paired smile and you return the same nonverbal acknowledgement. corners of your lips still lifted up, you gather the boys, âletâs have a drink break.â
as the boys make their way over to the benches, removing their gloves and helmets, you eye the water bottles and make sure you have enoughâfive in the cooler and three on the bench beside it. san bounds up to you after grabbing one from the cooler, bragging, âcoach! did you see the way jongho intercepted that puck?â
from beside him, wooyoung reenacts the moment with wild flails of his limbs and airy whooshes from his mouth, jongho watching with bashful giggles. you indulge in their animated recount and listen intently. âhe was amazingly fast,â you agree.
yeosang passes an opened bottle to wooyoung before untwisting the lid to his own, commenting, âthe ankle weights on top of all the training must be working.â
the boys are not currently wearing any, but you had slowly implemented the use of vests, ankle or wrist weights during specific drills. now that they have taken them off and are playing without the burden of the additional mass, you are all starting to see the gains of their hard work.
you smirk with satisfaction, âof course. if my players are going to bulldoze across the ice, may as well make them fast enough to avoid all the opponents.â
âdonât encourage her,â wooyoung elbows yeosang scandalously. âsheâs going to make us wear heavier weights next practice.â
âyou donât get to complain if you donât even wear the weights,â you quip.
he knows his injury means that he cannot wear the weights in case it places stress on his ankle, so he curses at you with no real heat just for the sake of cursing, âfuck you.â
you wink, âlove you too.â
wooyoung shuts his mouth and scrunches the bridge of his nose with faux displeasure, and jongho laughs at his inability to faze you. you glance down and open your notebook to mention, âon that note, though, how do we feel about going up a few hundred grams next week?â
âiâm fine with that,â yeosang says at the same time jongho confirms, âsounds good.â most of the other boys also nod that they are fine with increasing their weights, save for seonghwa who notifies you that he is still adjusting so he will keep his as it is for now.
you jot down ticks and crosses next to their names corresponding to their answers whilst suggesting, âyunho and mingi, you can both probably try half a kilogram since your body masses are higher.â
said boys peer over your shoulder to see what their new weights would be, then yunho makes a noise of intriguement. âcoach, did you write these?â
you look to where his finger is pointing toâsticky notes upon sticky notes of unorganised observations and reminders to yourself. starting to feel self-conscious, you deny, â...no,â only for yunho to swipe the notebook from out of your grasp. âhey!â
he holds it up and open above him, voice gleeful as he reads one out, ââjongho, wooyoung and yeosang prefer water at room temperature when trainingâtake bottles out of cooler!ââ
âaw, coach,â wooyoung coos, âdid you deliberately leave three bottles in room temperature for us on the bench?â
feeling your ears heat up from being exposed, you swipe at the notebook. your skates give you added height, but so do yunhoâs skates, so your attempts to jump for it are futile.
ââboys want to eat abura soba after their winâ,â he continues to read, pausing to let out a dramatic gasp, âare you going to treat us, coach?â his question is met with enthusiasm.
when another wild swipe sends a sharp sting down your shoulder from the movement, reminding you of the pain that had flared up a few days ago, you decide to change tactics. you grab the back and front of his jersey with your hands, completely ready to commit to scaling him like a literal tree. but then a different set of hands easily takes the notebook out of yunhoâs and of course it would be mingi. you insult, âgive it back, you tall buffoon!â
mingi is hardly fazed as you switch targets to him, your fingertips nowhere near reaching the notebook as he snickers and reads, ââtrial jongho as starting forwardâwait.â he lowers his hands with sobriety and you are finally able to snatch the notebook back, shutting it before they can read any more of your sticky notes. it is not like there is anything they cannot know, but it is sort of embarrassing for them to see how much attention you pay to them.
âyou want jongho on the starting lineup?â mingi confirms that he has not read it wrong, eyes as wide as all the other boys as they look at you.
jongho is almost certain that you must have meant somebody else, or something else, because there is no way that he would be given the opportunity to start for the teamânot when they have yeosang and wooyoung as their wings, and the choice of hongjoong or seonghwa as their centres. he is used to being the player who momentarily relieves others of their shift on the ice, or as his parents so like to remind him, option b.
âwhy do you all look so surprised?â you frown. beckoning at jongho with your chin, you ask, âyouâve been practising hard to make your right hand just as good as your left hand, havenât you? so letâs take advantage of your versatility and unpredictability on ice and throw the opponents off. what do you think?â
jonghoâs mouth opens and shuts, struggling to formulate an answer through his wide beam other than, âiâof course, if youâd let meâif everyone else is happy.â
the pleased smile on hongjoongâs face is enough to make his cheeks sore and he wraps his arm around the youngestâs shoulders. he praises, âlook at you, our wild card and our hidden ace,â as seonghwa declares, âi know heâll do us so proud.â
both yeosang and wooyoung simultaneously offer their positions in the starting lineup and the rest of the boys watch on with fond expressions. they are grateful that you have recognised the talents and hard work of their youngest. although you are not aware, this opportunity holds significance not just in regards to his career.
you conclude, âweâve been on a good streak with our games. letâs ride the momentum and show the other teams what jongho is capable ofâwhat weâre all capable of.â
âyes, coach!â they shout, the loud echo of their voices reverberating and filling the rink with buzzing energy for the remainder of the training session.
spirits still high by the time you call it a wrap, you let them change as you grab your own belongings. there is a team meeting in the afternoon so you and the boys will be going back to kq to eat at the cafeteria and use the booked room. you pause when you see wooyoung loitering by your bag. he still has not changed out of his practice clothes.
âiâm not letting you on the bus if youâre planning on staying in those clothes,â you joke.
âiâm going to change!â he scowls indignantly, then avoids eye contact as he thrusts something out in your direction. he mumbles, âhad some spares. didnât want them. just dumping them with you so you can stash them or use them or whatever, i donât care.â
you grab the small bag, brows creased with confusion, but wooyoung dashes away to change before you can ask what it is. you peer inside and to your pleasant surprise, there are two packs of pain relief patches. your shoulder protests at the lack of attention you have given it in the last few days. the pain is chronic and never really goes away, but it has been bothering you more than usual recently, so it is all in good timing that you now have some patches.
you make a mental note to stick one on when you get to the company and grab your bag after ensuring your notebook is stored inside. as you head towards the change rooms to wait for the boys, you spot a piece of paper on the floor. it looks like rubbish that you must have missed on your way in earlier so you pick it up to throw away. but when your fingertips touch the familiar sheen of the wax-like paper, you realise wooyoung must have dropped it.
it is confirmed when you unfold it to read the text and see that it is from yesterday evening, at the pharmacy that is just across the street from the company; in your hands you hold wooyoungâs receipt for two packs of pain relief patches.
spring marks the start of the playoffs. in synchronisation with the burst of life that blooms with the season, your boys, too, flourish in the league.
the unpredictability of your teamâs strategies that entail a mix of both yours and hongjoongâs prowess helps to secure wins over the remainder of the regular season. despite the unsteady start to the season, it allows your team to scrape into the round of sixteen near the bottom of the standings.
the red devils are seeded against the team that is third in the rankings, and then against the sixth-standing team in the quarterfinals. in upsets that knock out two of the most anticipated teams in the league, your boys advance into the semifinals, their reputation as the demons of the ice rink that had laid low now rapidly spreading.
where none of the other competitors had paid you and your players any mind before, barely even noticing your presence, the opponents now glance and watch your team walk past with an air of confidence through the arena. their tense jaws and hard gazes size up your athletesâformidable rivals who have suddenly barrelled up the ranks from out of nowhere and now pose perhaps the biggest threat as a team that has somehow slipped under their radars.
you know; your team may be small in numbers. but with yunho and mingi flanking the sides of the boys, and even with hongjoongâs charismatic aura alone leading the front, which extends around him like a dark cloud of terror and envelops the rest of the group too, your team is a pack of predators at the tip of the apex.
other players part to make a path for your boys, whose heads are held high and eyes are set only on their captain and you, their coach, as you all walk to your assigned changeroom. the nerves have long dissipated because the ice rink is your territory and the other teams are your prey.
the moment you shut the door behind the last of them into the room though, the icy stare in wooyoungâs eyes melt and he exclaims, âholy shit, did you see the way everybody was looking at us? we must have looked so fucking hot, i wish i could ask for my own signature.â
from their glowing faces alone, you can tell that they are all basking in the feeling of finally being recognised and reckoned with. yunho bats his eyelids and pinches his voice higher into a falsetto, âoh wooyoung! youâre so handsome and cool, could i please have your signature?â
mingi imitates him and pounces on wooyoung, begging for a photo together as he clings onto his elbow. it sets off the rest of the boys to crowd around like mock fans with faux exhilaration. you snort at their antics, leaving wooyoung to sign imaginary sheets of paper with his imaginary pen in favour of ensuring all of their backup equipment and gear is correctly located outside or in the storage area.
you allow the boys adequate time to change into their full gear for their warm-up prior to the actual semifinal game before you walk back into the locker room. your ears perk up when you catch the end of sanâs question, âthatâs good for us, isnât it?â
âwhat is?â you ask out of curiosity, flipping open the provided cooler and adding several sports drinks into the ice.
âi overheard someone on the white tigers team say that their head coach happened to fall sick, so they have their assistant coach today,â jongho mentions.
the surge of brazen smiles and reassured glints in their eyes at the reveal of information makes you falter to a degree. you lightly chastise, âdonât let that get to your heads and start being cockyâplay as you usually do and do not underestimate them just because their head coach is off.â
you pull your notebook out of your bag, the familiar cover and weight of the book providing you with a sense of security as you remind the boys, âthe white tigers have a very similar playing style as us. we may have worked hard on our defensive strategies, but with similar strengths and weaknesses overall, it wonât hurt for us to still be cautious.â
âyes, coach,â they chorus.
hongjoong nods, âletâs go warm up, then finalise our starting lineup for the game.â
your teamâs allocated time on the rink passes by quickly and it is followed by the last adjustments to the discussed strategies and game plan, thorough checks of their gear, and the remaining boys who are still wearing their practice jerseys change out of the blue into their red game uniform. in full gear, there your boys stand, presence intimidating and demoniac. the boys do not live up to their team name; their team name lives up to them.
they stride through the hallway for their semifinal game against the white tigers. right at the end before it leads to the ice rink, yunho yells, âpep talk, captain!â
hongjoong groans, rolling his eyes, but places the blade of his stick onto the rubber flooring nonetheless. the rest of the boys huddle around, their sticks meeting in the centre of the circle and standing close together so that their helmets and shoulders knock against one another. you are also swept into the circle with yeosang and san by your sides.
âboysâŠand girl,â hongjoong snickers to himself before recollecting his very inspirational train of thought, âweâve fought hard to make it this farâthis is the first time weâve made it into the semis, so letâs keep running until the very end, yeah?â
to the teamâs increasingly loud cheers, hongjoong yells, âletâs fuck it up out there!â
their sticks hit the ground in unison and despite the muted sound of the cushioned flooring, their shouts of fighting resolve and unwavering determination drown out everything else. together, you emerge from the hallway and your starting players take their positions on the ice, ready to fuck it up.
only, it happens literally.
the moment the puck hits the ice and the white tigersâ centre forward, byun, wrestles it away with his blade, hongjoong immediately knows it is going to be one of those games. the ones where his competitive grit is fueling his mind ablaze but his body is leaden-footed as if he is wading through quicksand; where his body is just unable to keep up and move the way he wants it to. it is one of those days where his condition is just inexplicably off and there is nothing he can do about it except hope that his years of training and sheer aptitude for the sport will be enough.
âfuck,â you curse under your breath at hongjoongâs slip as jongho and yeosang rush to fall back and support those in defence. âhe wasnât like that during the warm-ups.â
byun is not only agile and swift, but is almost an identical reflection of hongjoongâs own bold and assertive offence. the centre forward powers through with evasive turns around yunhoâs attempt to body check him, unafraid and confident. passing the blue line into your teamâs defensive zone, byun flicks the puck at the goal.
the point shot is an unexceptional attempt to score, nothing that sanâs reflexive goaltending cannot take care of. he extends his left foot and blocks the low shot with his leg pad, where the puck then slides in yunhoâs direction. you did not doubt for a moment that san would not be able to save the shot, but it is still a close call that is far too early in the game to be a good sign.
your teamâs greatest strength is their unspoken synergy and seamless unity, but it is also their greatest weakness. when one player stumbles, particularly when it is their captainâthe very roots of the teamâtheir bond runs so deeply that it throws their teamwork out of harmony and ultimately impacts the entire team.
with sanâs save, yunho regains possession and handles the puck around the back of their net to shake off the pressure that the white tigersâ forwards are placing on him, as well as to buy his own team some time to reassemble in their formation.
you know that this is not going to work for long; you have to change the momentum of the game, and fast. âseonghwa, get ready,â you alert. âyouâre going on for hongjoong.â
the alternate captain stands, alarmed at the unexpected line change so early into the game. he grips his stick with white knuckles and watches his team as he waits for your cue. yunho hits the puck against the boards where yeosang successfully receives the rebound.
âbreakout!â yeosang yells and rushes forward with the chasing skates of the opponents nipping at his heels. jongho clears the centre line into the offensive zone at the same time hongjoong screens and blocks the view of the white tigersâ goaltender, setting up for an opportunity to score.
when the opponentâs left defence and wing advance on yeosang rapidly, he fakes a deceptive pass towards the boards before twisting the blade of his stick and flicking the puck between their skates instead in hongjoongâs direction. but like an eagle honing in on a small rodent, byun swoops in to snatch the puck, flipping the possession again.
the tides turn and all the athletes on the rink race towards your teamâs net, a cutthroat competition between triumph and desperation to chase the puck. byun passes to the player on his left as they both dash closer, the left forward immediately returning the puck the moment he receives it to break past mingiâs defence.
you are able to see the white tigersâ right wing following closely behind ready for a drop pass, but in your teamâs frenzied minds, they are unable to read the play. yunho approaches byun, who is expecting the defence and leaves the puck behind whilst skating on, knowing that it will be received by his trailing teammate. with the momentary confusion that is enough to disrupt both yunho and sanâs gaze on the puck, the opponentâs right wing winds his stick back just enough to build power without sacrificing speed, then slaps the puck into the corner of the goalâ
âand scores. within the first three minutes of the game.
âseonghwa,â you call out again with urgency as the whistle blows. you turn to look at him, âyouâre up. you have to break the flow of the team. not just the white tigers, but ours tooâthe boys are panicking and you need to help anchor them.â
he nods, steadying his hand on the board in preparation to hop over it, and you yell out for the captain, âchange!â
hongjoong sees the gesture of your hand pointing at the bench, and although his chest tightens with frustration at himself, he speeds towards the edge of the rink to change. once the captain is close enough, seonghwa pushes his skate off the benches to launch himself over the top of the boards onto the ice then propels himself forward to take the centre faceoff.
the captain sits down heavily on the bench, defeat already broiling off of his slumped body in smothering swells. you really cannot afford to take your eyes off the game; it waits for nobody and the whistle has already blown, the rink erupting into commotion. but whilst you need to watch the game unfold, you need hongjoong just as much, and his team needs him.
you turn him slightly to face you so that he can see your face of resolution. âyou are the captain, so be the captainâfor the teamâŠand for yourself,â you invigorate, voice raised so that he can hear you over the noise of the stadium.Â
you give his shoulder a hard squeeze, certain he will not be able to even feel it from under the pads of his uniform. regardless, he understands your intentions and nods grimly, the fog in his eyes clearing. wooyoung taps the back of his helmet in a show of encouragement and hongjoong returns the gesture with appreciation.Â
a particularly loud thump draws the attention of all three of you back to the game. from the grimace on yeosangâs face and his hand steadying himself on the boards, it is obvious he has just been body checked into the wall. seonghwa pursues the puck with graceful yet powerful speed before he digs both skates perpendicular into the ice to suddenly change direction. pushing off, he accelerates back towards the white tigersâ defensive zone when mingi manages to disrupt the opponentâs stickhandling enough for yunho to sweep the puck and skate it up the perimeter of the rink away from their net.
wooyoung also goes on for yeosang but as the left wing, so jongho switches position to play as the right forward. he skates past the benches when an opportunity arises and he hands off his stick whilst grabbing his right-handed stick from you with practised ease.
with the line change of forwards and with seonghwa on as your centre, your team stabilises to an extent. the red devils are no longer being pushed back but they are also unable to push forward. the game is at a stalemate, although the tides remain in favour of the white tigers with both their positional and psychological advantage of the first goal.
you can see the pressure weighing down on your boys; passes that yunho and mingi would be capable of executing blindfolded are miscalculated; predictable manoeuvres still mislead wooyoung in the wrong direction; seonghwa and jongho fail to notice the opportunities for clear passing and shooting lanes; and the openings appear far too wide and innumerable for san to cover the goal from. the relentless offensive pressure that the white tigers places on your team, strikingly similar to how the boys played when you first started coaching them, does not give any breathing room either.
so that is how the first period comes to an endâlosing zero to one with none of your players performing at their best condition. their steps are heavy and burdened as they walk back to the locker room for the intermission, helmets removed the moment they come off the ice to reveal hardened expressions. in the privacy of your assigned room, most of the boys adjust the pads in their gear and yunho peels off his shin guards to let them air out.
you pass around their iced bottles and as exhausted as they are, they make sure to voice their gratitude. san grabs wooyoungâs bottle for him, since the younger is bent over loosening the laces of his left skate. âhere,â san murmurs, twisting open the cap and passing it to wooyoung once he straightens his back.
similarly, seonghwa hands over an opened bottle to yeosang before taking a swig of his own. âyouâre okay?â he checks, the particularly rough body check that yeosang had copped earlier in the game still at the forefront of his mind.
yeosang gives the alternate captain a reassuring smile, âiâm okay.â
appeased by the answer, seonghwa turns to look at hongjoong, who is re-taping the blade of his stick. âwhat about you?â seonghwa softly asks, âyouâre feeling okay?â
hongjoong glances up briefly at the back of your figure. you are busy shifting the red magnets around on the whiteboard and erasing the markings you had made prior to the start of the semifinals. when you turn around to gather their attention, you accidentally make eye contact with him and break out into a small smile.
âyeah,â hongjoong replies, âiâm feeling okay.â
âalright, listen up boys, that was just the first period. weâre not even halfway into this game and weâve started to even up the playing field now that weâve found our footing,â you encourage. âwe just have to make sure we keep our heads cool and read their plays instead of simply reacting to their movements.â
you look at each of them as you direct, âtheir centre forward, byun, has been on for almost all of first period, so thereâs probably going to be a shift change, if not a complete line change of forwards. they have the leniency to swap out their top players since theyâre in the lead, which means if we want to break their momentum, we need to break it then.â
shifting yourself slightly out of the way, the boys are able to see the new arrangement of positions you have marked out on the whiteboard. âweâre starting the second period by sharpening our offence in the 2-2-1 formation,â you explain. you beckon your head at the captain, âhongjoong, youâre back on. you and wooyoung are to position yourselves up high between the neutral and offensive zonesâtry to screen their goaltender when our boys have possession. yunho, i want you to move up to our blue line with jongho and open up as many passing lanes as you two can. mingi will stay in defence and help cover the goal with san in case the white tigers makes a counterattack.
âuse this opportunity to make as many scoring chances as you can. if there isnât a clear shot but thereâs a chance it can be continued on by another one of us, then go for it anywayâany sort of pressure we can put on their team is better than none.â
your forwards nod with understanding, so you continue to the most important point, âbut the moment byun and the wingsâkim and song, i think they areâcome back on, weâre reversing the formation.â you reposition half of the magnets into a 1-2-2 formation. âonly hongjoong will stay up high; wooyoung will fall back and join jongho in the neutral zone; put pressure on their forwards from there. yunho and mingi, youâll play left and right defence as usual.â
san listens intently when you start moving the black magnets that represent the opposing players and call out to him directly. you warn, âsan, be careful of their drop passes. kim and song have been skating forward but leaving the puck behind for byun to score multiple times throughout the first period. they have you primed to predict it now, so theyâre probably going to change their tactic and pass directly in front of the goal instead.â
âyes, coach,â san acknowledges.
a glance at the screen on the wall of the locker room tells you that there are only a few minutes left of the intermission. âgear up and get ready to go back on,â you instruct the boys.
they make final adjustments to their pads and yunho tapes his shin guards back into place under his socks. you make sure they all have their helmets and sticks when they start to file out of the locker room once they are ready and you grab wooyoungâs gloves for him while he ties the laces of his skates again.
âthanks,â he reaches out for them as he stands up. except he stumbles slightly when he puts weight on his left ankle and your hand instinctively grabs his to steady him.
your eyes grow wide with concern. you know that wooyoung is the type to keep quiet about his pain, even if you ask, âdoes your ankle hurt?â
âno, my legs just fell asleep on me from sitting,â he reassures, conscious of your hand that still holds his. he smiles through his lie and hopes that you are unable to pick up on it. the buzzer sounds before you can, though, warning you both that there is only one minute remaining until the game resumes.
hurriedly you tell him, âlet me know if you need to come off.â
somebody yells out your names, forcing you both to rush off to join the rest of the team in the hallway. wooyoung knows that he should admit to you right there and then that his ankle does hurt, but he will notâhe cannotâŠbecause he owes it to his team.
they do not know and they will never know, but there is not a day that goes past where wooyoung does not feel guilty for having desired for their loss last year. he has to play and win this championship for his team because only then can he start to forgive himself. but until he wins, he deserves to suffer.
those in the lineup rapidly glide across the ice to take their positions, wooyoung included. a short buzzer sounds, the puck is dropped, and the second period starts. immediately you can see that your boys have the advantage. the white tigers had not expected you to take such an aggressive approach of offence considering that you are losing.
and sure enough, just as you had predicted, their coach has changed their entire line of forwards. the players are still undeniably skilled, but they visibly struggle to match the pace at which hongjoong and wooyoung are now leading your team to attack.
the rink is under the boysâ control; the neutral zone has become a stronghold with the resistance of both jongho and yunhoâs combined strength and mingiâs reinforcement from behind. wooyoung weaves through the players with polished agility as he creates passing opportunities around the offensive zone, whilst hongjoong makes his own path with imposing might, his devilish wings spread. and even if the white tigers somehow manage to gain possession of the puck and break past your defence, san looks impossibly larger than the goal itself, leaving no openings for their forwards to score.
it is well into the second period when the perfect play sets itself up. with mingi blocking any possible rebounds off the boards, yunhoâs attempt to body check the white tigersâ right wing forces the player to pass the puck across the ice. before their centre forward is able to receive it, jongho has already intercepted and is thundering ahead with his stick controlling the puck.
âhigh!â he shouts, ploughing through the neutral zone as wooyoung and hongjoong immediately respond to his call and skate up towards the goal.
jongho deliberately looks at his captain but flicks the puck with a forehand pass in the other direction, too fast for the defenders to react to. wooyoung easily receives the anticipated pass, thighs burning and his left ankle stinging as he rushes towards the goal from the left with powerful acceleration. the white tigersâ goaltender immediately lowers his stance and raises his arms in preparation to block his shot.
in the corner of his eye, wooyoung sees hongjoong matching his lightning pace on his right, the captainâs eyes narrowed with concentration and body weight tilted forward as he hurtles past the defenders. wooyoung pretends to wind up his stick for a slap shot into the net, only to twist the angle of his arms at the last second to send the puck skittering across the ice directly parallel to the goal. the goaltender drops down to his knees, having anticipated a scoring attempt, except the puck is now nearing hongjoong.
hongjoong sees it clearlyâthe trajectory that the puck is taking and the perfect point where it needs to meet his stick. without breaking its momentum, his arms contract to swing his stick and the blade collides with the puck with forceful precision, sending it hurtling through the air. the goaltender desperately scrabbles back onto his skates to defend the other side of the goal, but it is too late.
the puck flies past the posts and hits the netting.
the horn blares and echoing cheers erupt throughout the stadium as the lights flick on to shine across the net and your forward players. hongjoong yells with fierce triumph, stick raised into the air as wooyoung excitedly collides into him. the duo disappear amongst the bodies of your boys as they swarm around them feverish exuberance.
âthatâs our fucking captainââ ââwooâs assist was insane!â
hongjoong cannot even tell who is who as he is jostled around in overjoyed laughter and beaming smiles, numerous hands reaching out to tap his and wooyoungâs helmets and shoulders. from outside the rink, you, seonghwa and yeosang have long stopped sitting on the benches, bodies too strung tight with hopeful tension to stay seated, so you are immediately swept up into a hug as the three of you celebrate the goal with identical exhilaration.
the game is still far from over but the morale has just skyrocketed through the roof as if the red devils have scored the winning goal. combined with the teamâs fans electrifying the atmosphere of the stadium, it definitely feels like it, and you are starting to see hope that the ones advancing to the finals after today will be your boys.
âline change!â you faintly hear, so you still to watch all three of the white tigersâ forwards skate towards the boards. byun, kim and song jump onto the rink, back on offence in the wake of your goal.
hongjoong makes eye contact with you when you search for him amongst the team huddle and in unison, you both nod, pride and determination unspoken in your gazesâthe real game is about to start now. the boys start to disperse and take up their positions around the marked circle for the centre faceoff, and hongjoong and byun meet head-to-head once again in the middle of the rink.
the white tigersâ centre forward smirks condescendingly, âcute goal.â
hongjoongâs face thunders over but he will not let himself resort to dirty sportsmanship. he bites his tongue and lowers his stance, focusing his attention on the game instead.
âready,â the referee signals, then the puck is released.
byun manages to steal it and sends it backwards to his defensemen to open up more passing lanes, but as discussed, your boys mutually move into the 1-2-2 formation to fortify against their offensive plays. despite the pressure of the white tigersâ top forwards back in play, your team is riding on the momentum of your goal; although you had been treading to keep your heads above the water during the first period, there is now an air of confidence that permeates the ambience of the rink in favour of your boys.Â
an angled pass from their defence rebounds off the boards and kim receives it high in the neutral zone. he attempts an immediate pass across the ice to song, except the safety net of your playerâs defensive formation allows mingi to thrust out with his stick to intercept the pass. he signals, âbreakout!â before deflecting it to wooyoung.
the turnover of possession immediately triggers a switch in defence to offence as wooyoung handles the puck back the other way. his wrists twist the stick with measured coordination, controlling the blade and puck as an extension of his own hands while approaching the offensive zone. wooyoung sees the white tigersâ defensemen racing towards him so he abruptly pivots towards the left to drag the black disc around their extended sticks.
suddenly, a sharp pain engulfs his ankle that has his legs crumbling as he staggers off balance. wooyoung manages to stay upright, using his stick to steady himself, but the momentary stumble is more than enough of an opening for byun to steal possession from behind him.
the rival centre forward swerves around jongho then stays close to the perimeter to avoid mingiâs resistant defence. behind mingi, san splays his legs out as he prepares to block the left side of the goal, but byun continues blazing on and wraps around the back of the net. san follows his movement and swiftly shifts over to the right instead while byun cradles the puck with his blade to lift it into the air the moment he approaches.
yunho cannot risk a penalty by raising his own stick to block its trajectory, so he shifts his body in hopes of deflecting the shot before it reaches san. but byunâs wrists snap and tuck the airborne puck at a sharp angle right past the red goalpostâŠand the horn blows to mark the scoring of a goal.
your jaw plummets at the same time that your heart does. not even your lungs work, your body frozen stock-still. once more, the white tigers are back in the lead only mere minutes after the score had been painstakingly tied by your team.
âfuck!â wooyoung curses and slams his gloved fist against the ice, having dropped to his knees in enraged denial.
seonghwa looks on with despondence from beside you as hongjoong drags wooyoung back up to his feet. the captainâs jaws are clenched in frustration but only because of the score itselfânever because of his boys. when mingi and yunho try to comfort san with firm squeezes and uttered reassurances, he can only return a tight smile, all three of their breaths heavy and irregular from exertion and dismay.
for the boys to have climbed so arduously and persistently to even the scores, only to be knocked off and their momentum obliterated so mercilessly soon, it is even more demoralising than the white tigersâ first goal. after all, the higher the climb, the harder the fall.
through the deep ache in your heart, you mutedly say to yeosang, âgo on for wooyoung, and tell jongho to change sticks and play as left wing.â
âyes, coach,â he replies, voice delicate. yeosang waits as you gesture for wooyoung to come off before he hops over the boards and skates in jonghoâs direction.
âwoo,â you murmur as your left wing makes his way back to the benches, but he avoids your gaze and keeps his head down. you bite your lips and decide not to push it for now. instead, you press an opened bottle into his gloved hand.
wooyoung is thankful that the bottle is half empty, because his hand unconsciously clenches around it with quivering shame and he would have spilled the water were it full. he makes no move to bring the bottle up to his lips; he doubts the water would go down his constricted throat anyway. the penetrative guilt of his tears hurts immeasurably more than the piercing throb of his ankle because he may have just cost his team the winâŠagain.
even when the buzzer signals the end of the second period, wooyoung dares not to look up. the score is one to two and it is his fault. the intermission passes by in a haze of dissociation, his body robotically moving on autopilot into the locker room and back to the ice rink. wooyoung does not even know whether there are line changes to the positions or whether the game strategy has been altered.
but it does not matter because it does not concern himâas if any coach would put him on after his grave mistake. what wooyoung fails to notice though is the glances of worry in his direction, and they do not come solely from his boys.
the stakes run at their highest in the third and final period. tension suffocates the entire stadium, invisible hands that snake around your throats with a hangmanâs loose and make you break out into cold sweats. all the players on the ice rink put everything that they have on the line because by the end of the next twenty minutes, only one team will be advancing to the finals.
from the moment the puck is dropped into play and the timer resumes, the rink is a torrential battlefield of contesting skates and grappling sticks. dramatic passes and unforeseen interceptions lead to rapid turnovers that force both teams to hastily switch back and forth between offence and defence.
but everyone learns of the juxtapositions of the world early on in life. there is no light without dark, there is no happiness without sadness, there is no spring without autumnâŠand there is no victory without defeat. for every scoring attempt that the red devils make, the white tigers make three, steadily and gradually pushing your boys back in the final stretch of the game. and while most of your forwardsâ goals are blocked in the nick of time, most of theirs are not.
as a last resort in the face of the crisis, you calculate the risks then add seonghwa onto the field. âyunho, change!â you yell, pulling him off defence.
âbehind you,â byun alerts song as seonghwa powers across the ice right into the cutthroat action, before cursing when the white tigers nearly lose possession of the puck.
your two captains unrelentingly pursue the black disc at the forefront of your team, their complementary synergy and unity a whirlwind of prowess to be reckoned with as they try not to let the burden of scoring weigh them down. despite the overwhelming pressure as the teamâs last line of defence, even more so now that you have sacrificed stability to capitalise on having two centre forwards, sanâs cat-like eyes do not cloud over, only intensely scanning the field and the opponentâs plays.
you glance at the clock. there are only two minutes left and even the combined efforts of your forwards is not working. you never thought that you would ever have to do this as a coach, but now you are afraid there is no choice. âyunho,â you urge.
his head turns to you and you see the ashen pallor of your own face reflected on his as the very probable outcome of the game dawns across your minds. you make your decision. âyouâre going back on. for san.â
yunhoâs eyes widen. âfor san? i canât play as goaltenderââ
âno,â you shake your head, âweâre playing without a goaltender.â
sixty seconds.
save for wooyoung, all of your defenders, wings and centre forwards make a last-minute spurt to attack, not letting their bodies recover for even a split second as they strain their burning legs and gasping lungs.
thirty seconds.
they desperately break past the physical boundaries of their own stamina into their last reserves of pure grit and will, draining every last drop that their mental resilience has to offer.
ten seconds.
they do not give up. they try again and again to score. but against all of your prayers, all of your tears and sweat and against all of your hopes, the gap does not close. the final buzzer blares throughout the entire stadium, marking the red devilâs loss.
two to six.
your players stand motionless, ghosts of denial and despair amongst the crazed jumps and bounds of celebration as the white tigers flock across the rink towards one another. hongjoong tilts his head upwards to stop the rush of tears from falling down his face, both yunho and seonghwa mirrors of his pain as sweat and tears drip down in salty trails. san grasps the edge of the board in front of him, his head hung low and shoulders quaking from how hard he tries to stifle his sobs so that wooyoung does not hear him.
not one of your boys are able to accept the results of the match. not even you can bring yourself to utter a single word of consolation, be it for yourself or for them. and as you watch the wretched image of your heartbroken boys, choking back tears of your own that you are unaware still manage to escape the corners of your eyes, the only sounds in your ears their stricken cries, you are reminded that the path of an athlete and coach is nothing like its portrayal in movies and stories; where hard work triumphs and leads to sure success.
the harsh reality is that there is no dramatic comeback. there is no underdog victory. there is no miracle and there is no final to advance to. you and your boys lose by triple the amount of your own goals and just like that, the journey has come to an end at the semifinals.
it is an anticlimactic defeat, the gap so far that your team could not even see the light at the end of the tunnel. and somehowâŠthat feels far worse than losing by just a marginal difference.
the locker room is mostly quiet, the silence punctuated only by the closing of zippers and rustling of canvas as the boys who have finished showering and changing pack the rest of their gear for the final time. there are no more intermittent sniffles, leaving behind a miserable hush of emptiness instead. even the dying flicker of the light in the far corner of the ceiling thrums with more energy than the boys combined.
you sit on one of the benches and absentmindedly thumb through your notebook. seonghwa sits to your right, his kit bag already long organised and tidied to preoccupy his mind. the warmth from the close proximity of your thighs and elbows is a gracious comfort to the both of you. it no longer makes your backs straighten with uptightness, conscious of the boundaries between coach and athleteânot after your hearts and bodies melded together in hugs of solace after the final buzzer of the semifinals and melted away those lines.
seonghwa places his hand soothingly on your knee and murmurs, âstop looking at that. weâll think about it later all together.â
none of the words or diagrams had been registering in your head, but you nod and close your notebook anyway. he probably does not want to see it either. you rest your head back against the wall behind you with a small exhale, blankly watching your team instead until your eyes travel around the room.Â
you count, then count again, before calling out, âcaptain, is wooyoung still showering?â
hongjoong cranes his neck around at the same time that everybody else does as well. âdonât think so,â he frowns, âiâm pretty sure he was one of the first ones out.â
wooyoungâs kit bag is still unpacked in his locker, so he is definitely not already waiting for the bus outside. before his absence can raise any alarmsâthe last thing the boys need on their plate right nowâyou stand and announce, âiâll go find him. he probably just lost track of time.â
âdo you need me to come with you?â yeosang rises to his feet.
you shake your head and reassure, âkeep packing your bag.â then you turn to make your way out of the locker room when somebody calls out for you.
âcoach, wait.â
itâs san, who skitters in front of you to press something into your hands. âgive this to him when you see him?â
the item crinkles and a glance downwards reveals that it is an instant ice pack. you smile softly, stuffing it into the pocket of your jacket and hoping that nobody notices the ice pack that is already in there. âof course,â you gently touch his forearm. âiâll be back.â
this time you make it out to the corridor but you do not get further than four steps before another voice stops you.
âcoach!â
when you turn around, hongjoong emerges from the doorway. he slows down as he catches up to stand in front of you. âiâŠâ his voice falters. âiâm sorry.â
iâm sorry i didnât realise wooyoung was gone. iâm sorry i didnât do my job as captainâŠand iâm sorry for losing.Â
âno,â you shake your head. âdonât be.â because you tried your bestâŠand you did not give up. beckoning in the direction of the locker room, you tell him, âtake care of the boys, okay? iâll be back with wooyoung.â
the rigidity in hongjoongâs shoulders dissipates. âthank youâŠy/n.â
you smile, âanytime, hongjoong.â you wait for him to walk back inside before you finally turn to find wooyoung.
the arena is massive but apart from the locker roomâwhich you already know wooyoung is not inâthere are limited places that offer privacy from the multitude of people who mill around, be it other athletes, staff or spectators. you know from personal experience, so you head to the one place that is usually guaranteed to be somewhat out of the public eye.
âoh, fuck me,â wooyoung startles when you sit yourself down heavily on the same step as him, his curse echoing around the both of you. âhow the fuck did you know i would be here?â
you snort, bumping his shoulder with yours. âi hate to burst your bubble, but this isnât exactly an original experience. iâm pretty sure every athlete has hidden here to cry at one point in their career.â
the slight spark of light that had ignited within wooyoung at your appearance suddenly flickers out, reminded of why exactly he is hiding in the emergency stairwell in the first place. shame tears his eyes away from you, unable to meet your gaze any longer.
âi want to be left alone,â he murmurs.
although you respect his request, that is the opposite of what he needs. left to his own thoughts and devices, you know that wooyoung will spiral dangerously in guilt and self-reproach, even if the red devilâs loss is not his faultâis not anybodyâs fault.
the two of you sit in silence, wooyoung intermittently swiping at a lone tear that threatens to drip off his chin, and you mulling over the words that you hold close to your heart. eventually, you break the quietude with a soft chuckle.
âthe first game i ever played i was actually on left defence. our team was losing by two goals and i suddenly had the puck. i still remember seeing an opening in the goal and feeling the surge of confidence that i did when i hit the puckâŠbut you know what?â
wooyoung does not answer, does not look up from where he is picking at his cuticles, but you can feel his curiosity so you continue, âit was an own goal. i scored into my own teamâs net and it wasnât until i scored another goal before i finally realised which way i was meant to go. obviously, my team wasnât very happy with me, but then i ended up winning the game for them anyway and thatâs how i started playing as centre forward.
âthere was also a time during internationals where i argued against the refâs call and got myself put into the penalty box. it cost our team a goalâthe tiebreaker, too. i learnt my lesson and never did that again. and then there was the first couple of years i started to coached. i thought i had enough experience as a player to be a perfect coach. it wasnât until one of my teams told me to pull my head out of my ass that i realised i was anything but.â
that gets a small snicker from out of him. you deliberate, âiâd like to think that we make the best team now, though.â
he scowls disgruntledly, âweâre your only team.â
âand my favourite team, too,â you laugh softly, gauging his expression. âmy point is, wooyoung, we all make mistakes. but the reason why we make them in the first place is because we love playing. we do what our heart wants to in the moment and we play for ourselves because otherwise, there would be nothing left of us without ice hockey. what matters is that we stand up again and learn from the experience.â
wooyoung feels the weight of your words settling heavily in his chest because they are only half true to him. his passion and love for the sport indeed burns eternally as a blazing inferno inside of him, but his persistence to play today was due to ulterior motives. to acknowledge that aloud is a different story, though.
your voice takes on a lighter tone, âalthough i guess in this case, you should be sitting down with that ankle of yours. you know you should not be gambling with your injuries.â
he finally looks at you; a former athlete who did not even have the luxury to gamble your injury. it suddenly scares him to imagine just an ounce of the conflicting anguish that must course through you at his continuous decisions to endanger his own careerâthe anguish that you have made sure to never show, lest it affect them.
âdo you ever feel angry?â wooyoung abruptly asks, voice laced with hesitation.
it is your turn to look away. you know that the question is not directed at himself but your entire career. with a bittersweet chuckle, you allow yourself to admit, âevery day. i still get angry and i still get upset. i wake up in the morning wondering why it had to be me and i go to bed at night wondering why i didnât deserve a second chance.
âbut iâm okay; it gets easier to be okay. coaching means that i still get to go on the ice, i still get to experience the adrenaline of games and i still get to play through you guys. and most of allâŠi still have a team. i donât know if i will ever stop feeling angry, but itâs better than it used to be.â
at your admission, wooyoung is reminded of how you are possibly the only one who would be able to truly understand him. he musters his courage and confesses, âi wanted us to lose last yearâŠand we did end up losing.â
it catches you off guard, the direction of the conversation not what you had expected, but you neutralise your expression and tone so as to not make him feel defensive. âhow come?â
he swallows. âmy ankleâi fractured it last year just before we made it into the playoffs, so i wasnât able to compete. i had been so angry at first; angry at myself for getting injured, angry at my coach for not letting me play, angry at my team because they could play. then when it became clear that i wasnât going to be able to compete regardless of how angry i was, i became jealous, insecure andâŠafraid. jongho and i share the same position, and i mean, look at him nowâheâs able to play both left and right wing. if they had won the playoffs without me, then would the team really need me?
âthey did end up losing, just like i had wanted them to, but that made me feel so much worseâmade me realise just how terrible i am of a person. the guilt eats me alive every single day and i tell myself that i will make it up to them this time, that i will risk everything to win for themâŠâ wooyoung scoffs pathetically at himself, âonly for me to fuck things up because of my fucking ankle again.â
you get it. the slow gnawing of yourself from the endless feelings that you âshould not haveâ until you become no more than an empty husk. ever since your own injury, you have spent nights on end trying to reconcile with your emotions in your own confusing and formidable journey, but for the first time ever, you are grateful that you didâbecause you can keep wooyoung company on his.Â
you carefully voice, âi think it was okay for you to have felt the way that you did. theyâre your feelings and nobody can invalidate them nor your experience. what i came to realise was that all of those âuglyâ feelings do not make us ugly for having themïżœïżœthey simply make us human. it is only a problem when those feelings end up hurting other people, but i think the person you hurt the mostâŠwas yourself, wooyoung.â
at your words, he looks at you with wide eyes, a fresh swell of wetness gathering in them. wooyoung is kind and loving to everybody, yet has never once thought about deserving that kindness and love for himself. you smile gently, trying to hide the slight quiver in your own lips as your heart clenches with a desire to be loved in his stead.
âyou know, woo, iâve watched basically all of your past games including the quarterfinals from last year. but if i were to compare it to todayâs game, it was as if two completely different teams were playing. your team was alive todayâa truly united team where every member is the driving force behind each otherâs passion for the game. i am pretty confident when i say that a huge part of it was because you were playing with themâbecause the team was finally whole again.
âyes, the trophy and the championship title is coveted but it is not what truly matters to them and neither to you. it wasnât the actual win itself that you wanted today, but being able to win for them. and if your boys were to pick between winning without you and losing with you, iâm pretty sure you know better than i do what their immediate choice would be.â
should the other boys be here right now, they would instantly berate your ears off for even suggesting the first option. the thought flickers through wooyoungâs mind too and the corners of his lips tug upwards slightly.
still, he apprehensively confirms, â...no one is angry at me?â
âno,â you reply, voice soft, ânot at all. but we are worried.â
you are reminded of the weight in the pocket of your jacket. pulling it out, you present the ice pack to wooyoung. âlook, san told me to give this to you.â
his fingertips brush against your palm when he reaches out, hand hovering over the ice pack as if he does not dare to touch it. âsan did?â he whispers.
when you nod, the final confirmation that he needs that nobodyâyou includedâharbours ill feelings for him and his actions, he allows himself to take the ice pack. allows himself to love himself.
âyou need to take care of your body,â you fondly chastise, lightening the atmosphere. âdid coach cho not drill into you that as an athlete, your body is your most valuable asset? if you thought he was bad, heâs going to seem like an angel when iâm through with you. you wonât just be banned from playing, iâll tie you to the bed to make sure you donât walk on that ankle.â
wooyoung laughs through the few tears that are left, mood lifted enough to suggestively lift his eyebrows and quip, âkinky.â his laughter grows when you punch his arm in response.
no longer does he have to carry this burden alone because you are there for him now. but you know that you are not the only one who can be there for wooyoung. the dynamic between the boys runs past mere teammates and from what you have noticed, quite possibly even friends.
tentatively, you suggest, âmaybe this is something you should tell the others about. that way you can truly let things go.â
his gaze wavers at the idea as he looks at you. yet, the miniscule smile and encouraging nod you give him fills him with tranquillity. perhaps it is time to let go, but the only way he can truly do that is if he is honest to the boys about his feelingsâif he is honest to himself.
âokay,â he breathes out softly.
you grace him with another beat of silence before you stand up, extending your hand out to him. âletâs go.â
wooyoung takes your offered hand and lets you pull him up to his feet. he does not know if it is intentional, but the slight squeeze you give him right before your hand lets go of his fills him with warmth. the feeling stays with him even when he activates the ice pack as you two walk back to the locker room.
right at the doorway where the rest of the team is behind, you stop. you place your hand on wooyoungâs back, whose brows are starting to furrow in confusion. âiâll be waiting out here. take your time,â you tell him.
âthank you, coach,â wooyoung returns your soft smile.
before you can think better of it, you reply, âi wasnât talking to you as your coachâŠbut as your friend.â then you nudge him towards the doorway with tender encouragement, waiting for him to walk through the threshold before you close the door behind him.
the first few months you had coached the red devils, mistrust had been in the shape of private conversations that deliberately excluded you. but now, trust is in the conversations that you know you do not need to be a part of. so you simply lean against the wall and wait.
and when they emerge from the locker room half an hour later, you know you have made the right decision upon seeing their eased expressions and relaxed shoulders. the air is still sombre, their defeat in the semifinals still fresh at the forefront of everybodyâs minds, but what matters now is that they will face the loss togetherâthe eight of them and you.
âhere you go.â
hongjoong hands you your bag so that you do not have to go back in to grab it. you take it graciously from him, then with him by your side, you two lead the group through the arenaâpast the gazes and whispers that follow your groupâand out to the teamâs bus.
first to load his kit bag, yeosang takes his usual seat towards the front and waits. he has long developed the habit of placing his backpack under the seat in front of him instead of beside him. as the bus starts to pull away once all the bags are properly stored, you wordlessly take the seat next to him. your knees intermittently brush up against each other with the slight sway of the bus, but neither one of you make a move to shift your legs away.
you and yeosang watch the outside world whirl by the window, just like you always do. except the flowers that have bloomed among the treesâthat had been bursts of positivity and vibrancy only just this morningâare now bittersweet reminders of the fall that you and the boys have just experienced.
a brief movement below your line of vision causes you to glance down. it is yeosangâs hand, palm upturned with a silent invitation of solace. you slide your fingers into his, an extension of the comfort you wish to give to them, and them to you.
what you and the boys do not realise, though, is that your flowers have simply bloomed elsewhere.
your jaw drops in sync with the last of the heavy suitcases that seonghwa rests on the floor outside their apartment complex. the amount of his luggage is easily equivalent to at least half the teamâs.
âthese are all yours?â you confirm.
seonghwa looks at you strangely, âof course. why?â
you look at him strangely. âare you planning on moving? why did you pack enough for a trip around the world?â
âwell somebody didnât want to tell us where we were going, so i had to make sure i was prepared for wherever our destination would be.â
âitâs called a surprise for a reason,â you shake your head, âand i did tell you to pack for cold weather, didnât i?â
seonghwa fakes offence, scoffing, âcan i remind you that it is still spring here, so my apologies for assuming that it might potentially mean we are travelling overseas.â
âyouâre such a worrywart, you old fart,â wooyoung teases, circling around the older on his rideable suitcase.
seonghwa yelps when the wheels nearly run over his toes and he threatens, ânext time you wet through your entire pack of underwear, donât come crawling and begging for my spares.â
the suitcase halts indignantly to a stop with its rider. âthat was one time,â wooyoung complains, âand it wasnât even my fault!â
âit wasnât even my fault,â seonghwa mocks. âi told you not to put your shampoo in a ziplock bag but no, you said that it would be fine.â
wooyoung sticks his index finger up. âcorrection, hongjoong said that it would be fine.â
âwhat the fuck, wooyoung,â hongjoong blanches at the sudden disclosure.
âand thatâs exactly where you are at fault,â seonghwa cocks his eyebrow at wooyoung. âwhy would you listen to him?â
âwhat the fuck, seonghwa. iâm your captain,â hongjoong scowls.
âonly during games.â
when you make eye contact with san, the two of you can only sigh with amused resignation. the rest of the boys shake their heads and proceed to load their luggage onto the bus, leaving the trio to feud it out in the background.
as mingi stacks his luggage beside yunhoâs, he turns to ask, âare you sure we donât need our kits?â
âyou all brought your skates and sticks with you?â you question in return. when mingi and yunho nod, you reassure them, âthen thatâs all you need.â
jongho pipes up from beside you, âbut what about training?â
âmental training,â you simply grin before hopping up the stairs to sit beside yeosang.
the boys gradually take their seats, even wooyoung and the two oldest despite their continued bickering. somebody yells out over the commotion, âcoach! are you going to tell us where weâre going now?â
you peer backwards over the top of your seat to find everyoneâs eager eyes on you. ânope,â you snicker, âyouâll find out when we get there. we are going on a holiday though, iâll tell you that much.â
there is a surge of excitement at your confirmation and a similar fluttering eagerness flits through you, except yours is because you cannot wait to see their reactions. you really hope that the next two weeks will help to reset the teamâs morale and give them a much-needed break.
âkq let us go on holiday?â yeosang asks with an impressed look as you settle back in your seat.
you give him a proud smirk. âiâm pretty convincing when i want to be. plus, we just had playoffs and we would all benefit from the rest. what better time to do that than at the start of the off-season?â
âthere is no better time.â
âexactly.â
and so the bus starts the four-hour drive towards what the boys will soon come to realise is a team retreat. mingi connects his phone to the bluetooth, in charge of shuffling the music that blasts through the speakers, turning the atmosphere of the bus into a lively concert once it becomes obvious that it is going to be a long trip.
you have to yell over their deafening singingâwhich you have to admit actually sounds quite impressiveânumerous times for them to sit their asses down, their enthusiasm uncontainable by the seat belts and law regulations. but they look their age, free and untroubled; just a group of boys up to their silly antics with one another, so you cannot bring yourself to truly regulate them.
the bus drives on, making a rest stop at one of the service areas along the highway so that you can stretch your legs in fresh air, use the restrooms and most importantlyâ
âfood!â
their hollers resound before the doors of the bus even open. the second that the gap is large enough to fit one of them through, most of the boys go sprinting off like a stampede of toddlers in the direction of the food court.
wooyoung stays back and slips his arm through the crook of your elbow when you step off the bus too. he grins mischievously, âiâm sticking with you so you can pay for my food.â
âoh, stop it,â yunho tugs him away, pulling even harder when it only serves to make wooyoungâs grasp tighten around your arm. âiâll pay for your food. leave her wallet alone.â
you laugh brightly as you are jostled around and you pull a card out of your back pocket, holding it up like a golden ticket. you waggle your brows playfully, âitâs on the company card.â
both wooyoung and yunho freeze. their eyes instantaneously start to glimmer, faces radiating when they slowly look at each other. then before you can react, they pounce on you, linking their arm through yours on either side of you and dragging you along to catch up with the rest of the team.
âbuy whatever you want!â wooyoung brags and waves the card that he has seized off of you, âitâs on me!â
the service area itself is a field trip as the eight boys cause carnage throughout, except the destruction is in the number of times they swipe the company card. their hands quickly fill with rice cakes and fish skewers, corn dogs and grilled squid, more bags of walnut pastries and roasted potatoes tucked safely under their elbows. they demolish the snacks at the same rate it takes for the next ones to be prepared and the card is tossed around to keep up with their purchases.
they do not forget about the drinks either, getting iced americanos and barley tea to go along with their snacks, and banana milk and soda for the next leg of the trip. whatever catches their eyesâbasically everything they lay their eyes uponâthey buy. you do have to draw the line at daytime drinking though, narrowing your eyes at the cases of beer jongho and yunho try to pick up until they sheepishly put them back.
(you also end up having to purchase motion sickness tablets because seonghwa and mingi gorge themselves so full on snacks that they are queasy before they even make it back on the bus. kqâs president sends you a text too, asking just what exactly you and the boys have bought to rack up almost forty consecutive purchases at a service area. but the subsequent message asking if they are enjoying themselves tells you that his question is all in good fun.)
their energy mellows out during the last hour of the trip, both from tiring themselves out and from the gradual change in the scenery outside the windows. no longer can you see an endless mirage of highway road and open fields.
as the miles build up the further you travel, it leads deeper into a mountainous woodland with the trees growing denser and thicker around you. the narrower road winds around the base of hills and the bus driver carefully navigates the undisturbed peace of the forest. it starts to get colder and when the branches of the trees gradually dress themselves in dappled layers of snow, more of you shoulder on the thick coats and puffer jackets you had told them to bring.
the bus eventually arrives at a clearing amongst the pine trees, revealing a large but welcoming cottage pension. its wooden exterior and sloped roof gives it a distinctly cosy and rustic look, with large glass doors spanning the entire height of the walls that will let you admire the surrounding mountainous beauty from inside. off to the side of the cottage, there is a sizeable lake that has frozen over and immediately, you know that this was the perfect place to choose.
the boys press their faces against the window to get a better look as the bus pulls up beside the accommodation. âwoah,â they breathe out, their exhales fogging up the glass.
they follow you off the bus in a trance, mouths open and unable to peel their eyes away lest they waste even a second to drink up the sight before them. here, in the heart of the taebaek mountains, it is still a winter wonderland despite the spring blossoms that cover the rest of seoul.
you turn to face them, walking backwards slowly and spreading your arms out with fond tenderness. âwelcome to your home for the next two weeks, boys.â
even though it is simply an illusion created by taebaekâs geographical location and mountainous terrain, this time you find yourself appreciating the coldness and bareness of the winter-like ambience that cocoons you and your boys. it is as if time has stopped and there are no worriesâŠonly time to heal and start afresh.
living together, even if just for a holiday, is different.
you are used to only seeing the team in their training clothes, practice jerseys or bulked up in their padded gear and uniform. but here, the boys wear lounging sweatpants and worn hoodies, hair soft and poking into their eyes, bodies and expressions unguarded as they laze around. and where you are used to only seeing them at training, meetings and games, all rigorously scheduled and planned, there are no expectations to follow and no limits as to when you see them here.
the boys have their own organised chaoticness to their daily routines, having been living together for almost seven years now, and it seamlessly integrates into the space of the cottage too. but what truly surprises you and them is how you naturally blend into it.
when you rented the pension, you had ensured there were at least three bathrooms to accommodate all nine of you. however, you quickly discover that numbers mean nothing because the boys are incapable of staggering their morning and nightly bathroom routines one by one like you had assumed they would. you also realise that it is not that they are incapable, but that they like and want to do everything together.
space within a room holds no meaning to them and they are perfectly content to stand pressed up against each otherâs sides, expertly dodging elbows and leaning over one another to reach for their toothbrushes or skincare. after that first night, you wake up in the morning and patter off in search for the least cramped bathroom to wriggle yourself into, up to three of you sharing the large sink and mirror that now looks comparatively tiny as you brush your teeth together.
more often than not, you find yourself sandwiched between yunho and mingi. it is moreso a matter of neither boy letting you escape from their clutches if you happen to peer into whichever bathroom they have crammed themselves into.
âwe make the perfect ratio as the two tallest plus you as the shortest,â mingi likes to rationalise, âso it averages out perfectly with three boys in each of the other bathrooms.â
âbut sanâs shoulders are basically the equivalent of two grown men, so your point is invalid no matter how we divide ourselves up,â you like to argue back.
except they refuse to see reason. instead, yunho raises the volume of the speaker he has set on the sinkâs counter that blasts out music to playfully drown you out. you relent every time and it turns into goofy dancing from the three of you as you pull silly expressions at one another in the mirror. when you rinse your mouth, mingi will start a gargling competition without fail, but none of you have lasted for more than three seconds before you begin to choke with laughter.
(when you are with people you like, everything is funny.)
seonghwa shakes his head whenever he passes the bathroom, insisting, âthe only thing you guys are missing is a disco ball.â he is definitely not jealous of the fun you three are having. not at all.
the eldest has his own routine though, visible in the way he prepares everybodyâs cups of coffee in the morning. they are all made differently according to individual preferences; no sugar, double shots, a dash of milk, brown sugar, matcha powder or decaf. and despite the fact that yeosang is usually up the earliest, seonghwa does not allow him to make his own coffee.
seonghwa claims it is because nobody knows how to properly use the drip brewer, but yeosang sits next to you and murmurs into your ear, âhe just wonât admit that he likes to make them for us.â it must be the chill of the morning, but yeosangâs warm, whispery voice always sends goosebumps over your arms.
by the second morning, seonghwa finds himself naturally grabbing an extra cup and the hot surprise greets you with one and a half teaspoons of sugar in it, just how you like it. hongjoong emerges from the bathroom moments later to grab his cup and as he takes a careful sip, his eyes flit over the remaining cups on the table. seonghwa can practically hear the numbers ticking up in his head.
ây/n already took hers,â he verbalises, beckoning with his chin.
hongjoong turns around in the same direction to see you curled up on the sofa next to jongho and yeosang, your feet tucked comfortably underneath you as you lean forward out of curiosity to take a sip of jonghoâs americano. when your expression scrunches up from the shock of bitterness, jongho giggles brightly and steadies your hand that is holding your own cup of sweetened coffee. his eyes melt at your reaction.
âoh, i know that expression,â hongjoong chortles. âheâs a goner.â
seonghwa sees the honey in hongjoongâs own eyes and he smiles knowingly, âi donât think heâs the only one.â
hongjoong does not peel his gaze away from the three of you all cosied up on the couch. âyouâre right, theyâre both goners,â he hums absentmindedly, not at all registering who exactly it is who is being referred to.
(the true answer is that there are more than three of them.)
you discover that wooyoung is usually in charge of cooking, but in return, everybody else gets up to clear and wash the dishes the moment the last pair of chopsticks is placed down on the table. that is the only time they are allowed into the kitchen because they are apparently all walking hazards.
but when wooyoung realises you can actually handle a knife without giving him grey hairs from watching, the two of you easily divide the roles and tasks between yourselves. like a waltzing dance, you move together in the kitchen to prepare the meals. he passes you the spices in the overhead cabinets before you ask and you close the fridge when he takes out a pack of meat or vegetables.
cooking with wooyoung is never without bickering. he does not let you hear the end of the time you bump your head on the edge of the counter when you try to grab a saucepan from underneath, or the time you squeal after the oil starts to splatter from the onions. but if that is the reason why he starts to subtly move his hand to cushion the edges of the counters when you bend down to find something, or why he chooses to do the stirring and frying while you slice, then he pretends it is merely coincidence.
san never strays far away from the kitchen whenever you and wooyoung are cooking. you have noticed that they do not really ever stray apartânone of the boys do, though. wooyoung talks as you and san listen and the latter does not stop smiling as he watches wooyoung multitask. what you do not realise is the countless times you have forgotten to keep cooking because you are watching him too with the same expression that san wears.
(the rest of the boys realise and they also see the way san and wooyoung will pause to gaze at you.)
when you two have mostly finished cooking and it is simply a matter of waiting for the sauce to simmer or the soup to boil, you find that wooyoung will take his seat next to san on the barstools at the island, knees and thighs touching as he continues the conversation. you gravitate towards them the first time before catching yourself, cautious that you may be intruding, but then san gives you a dimpled smile and beckons for you to come and sit by his other side.
san likes to keep a gentle hand resting on wooyoungâs knee as he talks. when he does the same thing to you without even looking, your lungs stop working for a minute. the only thought that consumes your mind is the warm sensation of sanâs thumb soothingly running back and forth across your skin. you do not want him to stop, so you stay still in hopes that he continues. you are pretty sure san does not even consciously realise he is doing it.
(san does, and he is glad you do not move away.)
in the hours after dinner and before you all head off to sleep, you pile the thick blankets into the open living room and squish yourselves on the least number of couches as possible. again, space holds no meaning when you are with the boys and you find the press of yeosang and hongjoongâs skin against your own more natural there than not.
sometimes you watch movies together, other times talking with low voices as the hours tick by, and other times where you are all doing your own things but in the presence of one another. regardless, the nine of you stay cuddled in front of the fireplace with the warm glow of the fire and the light dreamy flutter of snow outside the windows.
yeosang tenderly tucks the blankets up around mingiâs shoulders when he falls asleep before turning to you on his other side. âare you warm enough?â he softly asks. and even though you say you are, he still tucks the edges of your blanket under your chin, nestling you safely within the blanket, hongjoongâs side and his own body.
the boys are naturally affectionate with one another and seeing the close dynamic of theirâŠfriendship so intimately in the environment of the retreat reminds you once more of the possibility that their relationship may run deeper than they let on.
(but when that affection extends to you, you wonder what exactly that may mean for your own relationship with the boys.)
and so living together, even if just for a holiday, is different. it is different when they are the first sight to greet you when you wake up, rubbing the sleep out of their eyes and voice still husky from fatigue as they murmur good mornings to you, and your cheeks start to glow with rosiness.
it is different when the decisions you make together are not about a change in formation or a defensive power play, but what to make for dinner and what movie you want to watch afterwards, and it makes you begin to wonder what other mundane decisions you want to make with them. it is different when they wrap you in their embraceâeight consecutive hugsâto bid you goodnight, and it takes you longer to fall asleep because you toss restlessly in your bed as their smiles replay in your head.
being on the retreat together is strangely domestic and homelike. but it has been almost nine months since you have started coaching the boys and thus seeing them every day for countless hours on end. so really, this trip should not change anything.
and yet, it feels like everything is changing.
jongho pays no mind to the conversation that is happening around him. last he heard, half of you are wanting to go out to skate on the lake before the sun sets and the other half are wanting to finish the halli galli championship you had started the night prior.
he is happy to do either but his mind is distracted by something else. as the screen of his phone lights up, jonghoâs eyes flicker down and he puts his hand over the glowing display before anybody can see the caller id. you glance at him when you catch the movement in the corner of your peripheral vision, only to look away when yunho calls out your name to see which of the two options you would prefer.
the screen goes black as the call goes unanswered. seconds later, it lights up briefly with a notification.
pick up.
then the caller id shows up again. jongho grabs his phone and mumbles to nobody in particular, âgoing to grab something from my room.â
closing the door to the room that he is sharing with hongjoong in the pension, jongho sits down heavily on the edge of his bed, phone clutched tightly in his hand. whilst he has no qualms ignoring their messages now, he still finds it difficult to do the same to their phone calls. he finds his resolve weakening as he watches his phone ring for the third time within minutes.
so jongho picks up. âmother,â he greets stiffly.
she scoffs scathingly, âyou finally decided to pick up.â
âiâve been busy with the playoffs.â a half lie.
âbusy? busy losing, you mean,â his mother ridicules. jongho is taken aback by the fact that she is aware, since he did not tell his family. it makes sense when she berates, âdo you know how embarrassing it was for me to find out from your aunt? she told me to congratulate you for making it into the semifinalsâthe semifinals, jongho.â
he feels a heat of shame at what she is insinuating. jongho defends, âthatâs still the top four out of seventy six teams.â
ânobody cares,â she turns her nose up. âit does not matter if you came fourth, second or lastâunless you win first place, the result is not worth anything. our entire family has a legacy of achievements and your younger brother even has an olympic gold medal now. but what have you done? this is a mere national competition and yet you are incapable of making it into the finals.â
âjongââ his name dies on the tip of your tongue and your hand stops before you can knock on the door when you hear jonghoâs muffled voice.
the boys had finally decided to grab their skates so you had come to get jongho to join everybody outside. realising he is talking to somebody, you are about to turn away and give him some privacy, but the words you hear make you freeze.Â
it is not the conversation itself that you overhear; it is the wounded tone of jonghoâs voice that makes it impossible for you to walk away. your feet stay rooted to the spot, in fact, wanting to enter the room. you have not heard jongho in such great affliction before, not even when he was consoling the boys with tears in his own eyes after their crushing defeat in the playoffs.Â
âwhen are you going to celebrate my achievements for what they are, instead of telling me to do better?â jongho appeals.
he has lived his entire life being told that he is not good enoughâconstantly compared to the accomplishments of his family, particularly those of his younger brother. what he does not understand is why he cannot just be recognised for the athlete that he is, void of any other person.
his mother is silent and for a brief moment, jongho thinks that she may finally see some sense in his wordsâŠonly for her to unfeelingly state, âwhen they are worth celebrating.â with a simple, âdo better,â she hangs up on him.
jonghoâs hand falls limply into his lap, phone slipping out of his lax fingers with a dull thud to the ground. he wants to swear. he wants to cry. he wants to throw his phone against the wall until the screen shatters. but jongho simply leans forward, elbows on his knees and head in his hands, the crushing weight of dejection forcing his lungs to exhale shakily.
there is a faint, timid knock on the door. he knows who it is immediatelyâonly one person would knock so softly. âcome in,â he answers listlessly, because he could never bring himself to ignore you no matter his own feelings.
the door cracks open to reveal your tentative figure and you slip through the opening. from the way your lips are pulled down, eyes rounded with concern, jongho knows that you have connected enough dots to understand the context of the phone call.
you approach the bed and try to ignore how small the boy in front of you looks with his shoulders hunched inwards on themselves. jongho has always appeared as the most collected and composed, even more so than the captain, and it makes your chest tight to realise he has simply been hiding this whole time.
jongho is not a man of many words so you do the next best thing that feels right in the moment. you simply open your arms. when his hands slowly come up in silent acceptance, you step forward to engulf him in your embrace.
he presses his face into the soft warmth of your stomach. the darkness welcomes him with safety and comfort and he lets out a stuttering breath that racks his entire body. you wrap one arm around his shoulders and cradle the back of his head with your other, your fingers tenderly caressing his hair in soothing motions.
although silence is what he needs, you allow yourself to say one thing to him. you murmur, âiâm proud of you, jonghoâŠso, so proud of you.â
and they are the words he has been wanting to hear his entire life. unable to keep it together any longer, jongho breaks down in your arms with tearful sobs and allows himself to grieve for the acknowledgement he has yearned his entire life and never received. however, it will only be for tonight because he has realised that it is futile to chase after recognition from a person who refuses to see his worth, even if that person is his own family.
there will always be other people who can see his actual worth; the same people who will still love him even if he does not have a gold trophy to call his. for him, those people are his seven boys and you.
so he stays in your arms with you wrapped around him, time lost to the two of you. he cries until he has no tears left and you tilt your head upwards to stop the flow of your own tears before they can drip down onto the crown of his head. and outside the bedroom, hongjoong quietly eases the door shut to give you both some privacy.
you do not know how much time has passed when you finally step out. jongho has fallen asleep after you tucked him under his covers, exhausted. heading towards your room to change out of your shirt, you are startled by the sight of hongjoong lingering near the door.
âyou didnât go out with the boys?
he shakes his head, then conscious of where you two are standing, he gestures inside your room and follows you in. âis jongho okay?â hongjoong asks.
âi think soâŠheâs sleeping now but probably just needs a bit more time,â you sigh, âi just wish i could do more for him.â
hongjoong reassures, âyou are already doing so much more than you realise.â
for jongho. for wooyoung. for all of them. comfort has never been about the words or actions, but the person who is by their side, and for the boys, having you there is already enough.
âreally?â you worry.
âyes, really.â
before he realises what he is doing, hongjoong reaches out to gingerly cup the side of your face to thumb away the worry in your brows. ây/n, you take care of us all the timeâŠbut who takes care of you?â he whispers.
âiâm your coach, of course iââ
âno,â he interrupts. âyou arenât just our coach and from what i have seen, you arenât just our friend either. unlessâŠâ hongjoong hesitates, âunless iâve been reading everything wrong, then in which case, tell me and iâll move away.â
you do not reply. your eyes flicker back and forth between his, your heart racing and mind blank. it is trueâthey are not just your players and they are not just your friends either, but you are unsure about taking such a huge leap of faith and acting upon the feelings you have only just started to understand.
hongjoong takes your silence as encouragement to step even closer until he is right in front of you. he keeps his hand on your cheek, his other coming up to delicately cradle your waist. you are standing intimately enough for his warm breath to span across your cheeks as he tenderly pleads, âlet us take care of you as more than what we are right now.
âif you do not want to put a label on it then thatâs fine, we wonât. weâll still be your team and youâll still be our coach. but please, let us take care of you when you are hurt, when youâre upset or angry, and when you are happy, too. let us love you as one of ours.â
as one of theirs.
you swallow and confirm, âare you all together?â
âyes, weâre dating each other,â hongjoong nods.
âbut then whyâŠâ your voice trials off. why me, too?
hongjoong taps the tip of your nose and jokes lightly, âis there a capped limit as to how many people we are allowed to love?â
it pulls a giggle out of you and he smiles fondly as he reiterates, âwe donât need to put a label on this and we can go entirely at your pace. just let us into your heart, please?â
for a moment you wonder what will happen to your professional relationship with the boysâwhat will happen if things do not work out or worse, if other people find out and report you all for it. but when you really think about it, you realise that the professionalism between you and the boys has long since blurred.Â
you do not know if you can go back to seoul after this retreat and act like you do not want to continue living with them. most importantly, you do not want to know if you can. so you take the leap of faith and nodâyou want to be theirs.
when you first met the red devils in autumn last year, you were resolved to win over them. never would you have expected that you would win them over in more ways than oneâŠand be won over yourself.
âhi, girlfriend.â
seonghwa smacks the back of wooyoungâs head. âstop pressuring her,â he hisses as the younger cackles delightfully and strides away through the snow impressively fast considering he is wearing his skates.
âignore him,â seonghwa turns to you, where you are sitting on the porch steps to the cottage. he squats down and takes the laces out of your hands to start doing up your own skates.
âi can do it myself,â you start.
âi know you can,â seonghwa hums, gazing up lovingly, âbut i want to do it for you.â
you press your lips together in an attempt to hide the shy smile that blooms across your face and when that fails, you duck your head down instead. ever since your talk with hongjoong the other day, the boys have been significantly more obvious and proactive with their displays of affection for you. however, you are pretty sure they had their own conversation when you were asleep or in the shower, because not one of them pressures you into something you are not ready for, even if that includes making your relationship official.
âthere you go. is it too tight? too loose?â seonghwa taps your skates and you tell him they are perfect. taking his offered hand with an appreciative smile, he pulls you up to your feet and you go to join the rest of the boys on the frozen lake.
you are sure it feels the same for every single one of your boysânothing can compare to that moment when you first step onto the ice. it is where you become a completely different person; a fish back in water, in control and at home.
it had been a gamble renting the cottage pension as you were unable to know whether the lake would be frozen over enough to allow for skating. but it is as if the heavens know not to separate you and your boys from the love and passion that your entire lives revolve around, because you are blessed to see them scrambling out to play on the frozen lake almost every single day, just like they are right now.
san spots you and seonghwa and beckons for you two to join. âhongjoongâs the tagger,â he calls out.
the captain stands at the other end of the lake, back facing everybody as he drawls, âgreen lightâŠâ
before hongjoong even starts to enunciate the first word, yunho, wooyoung and jongho have already pushed off their skates to advance. it sets off an immediate chorus of indignant shouts and desperate acceleration amongst everybody else to catch up. you laugh and seonghwa drags you along with him urgently, unable to stand your apparent nonchalance and uncompetitiveness.
but oh, how wrong he is. very quickly, you join the majority of the boys in a game of who can be the most sneaky with dirty play. wooyoung and mingi tussle with one another right as hongjoong turns around with his yell of âred light!â, trying to topple the other over so they get caught. jongho yanks on the back of seonghwaâs jacket whilst yeosang giggles and joins in to yank on jonghoâs, effectively preventing all three of them from advancing forward.
âlet go of me, you brats!â seonghwa flails forward against the combined weight of the two boys but to no avail.
you use yunhoâs height to your advantage and hide behind him, steadily creeping forward even when hongjoong has turned around to face you all. yunho quickly catches on and extends his hands backwards for you to latch onto. you are more than happy to let him do all the hard work skating you both towards the captain and you grin cheekily at the trioâstill caught up in their self-induced tug-of-warâas you overtake them easily.
ây/nâs cheating!â san hollers, the only one who is actually playing by the rules.
âlifeâs not fair!â you holler back gleefully at the same time that hongjoong sniggers, âsan, you moved your mouth! go back.â
san gives an indignant cry, âfavouritism, i say!â but, bless his heart, moves back to the starting line regardless.Â
when yunho is almost towering over hongjoong, he cues you to get ready to escape by letting go of your hands. you pivot around and without waiting for anything else, you start to run away.
âgreeââ
yunho tags hongjoongâs right shoulder before pushing off to the left so that he escapes the otherâs immediate line of vision. except it means that the first person that hongjoong sees when he turns around is you.
an involuntary squeal escapes you when you hear the terrifying crispness of skates on ice right behind you followed by the captainâs arms snaking around your waist. âcaught you, babeâ he beams. hongjoong lifts you up with shit-eating smugness at your reactionâboth at his close proximity and the pet nameâspins you around for good measure, then sets you back down to chase after the others.
wooyoung skates in a wide arc to dodge the captainâs frenzied rampage, only to suddenly appear right beside you with the most telling glint in his sparkling eyes that he is up to mischief. he grins.
âwooyoung, no,â you warn.
he grabs you by the waist. âwooyoung, yes.â
wooyoung pushes off his skates with you in front of him at breakneck speed across the ice, bellowing at the top of his voice, âmake way for the cripples!â
you scream the entire way to the end of the lake, hands clutching onto his like a lifeline as a colourful string of words flies out of your mouth. you think you black out for a second because when you open your eyes again, you are in a heaving tangle of arms and legs on the cushiony surface of powdery snow.
âoh, shit,â hongjoong winces.
the boys speed towards you and wooyoung, and yunho peers down at you on the ground with panicked concern in his eyes. âare you two okay?â he asks but when he sees that you are laughing, unrestrained and radiating joy, yunho relaxes and joins in with relief.
theyâmainly seonghwaâfuss over you both enough to reassure themselves that there is not so much as a scratch or bruise, before mingi suggests playing a casual hockey game of five versus four. there are to be no goaltenders and san fashions makeshift goalposts by poking sticks into the snow on either ends of the lake.
the team splits into their usual arrangement when they are required to be in two groups; hongjoong, yunho, san and wooyoung; seonghwa, yeosang, mingi and jongho. normally, you would offer to be the honorary refereeâŠbut the boys have never been rough with you and you have confidence that you will not get hurt. so for the first time in years, you play.
it is far from a proper league game and it will never be enough to quench your thirst as a former athlete, but for now, gripping your stick on the ice in tandem with the others, you are contentâyou are alive.
like red light, green light, the game starts off fair and proper for a grand total of two minutes. then it becomes a circus of foul plays and increasingly creative methods of cheating as all sense of order is tossed out the window. yunho and san stand in front of you, leaving just enough space for you to handle the puck, whilst hongjoong and wooyoung flank your sides and use their sticks to block any attempts to steal the puck. as a shielded group of five, you all move up towards the goalposts like a formidable army tank.
in retaliation, jongho physically manhandles hongjoong out of the way, hugging him from behind with a vice grip that he swears not to let go. seonghwa, mingi and yeosang imitate him with similar displays of strength, turning the entire match into a childish scuffle of chaos and hysterics.
there are no proper rules, no proper gear and no proper stadiumâonly the bare minimum, yourselves and uncontainable laughter. it feels like you are kids again, little souls harbouring colossal dreams, running around on the fields with long branches and a pine cone you had found when you could not afford to go to a real rink.
it is like you have gone back in time to when all you knew about ice hockey from watching it on your television screen was that you had to get the puck into the goal. you and the boys are fresh, blank slates without a care in the world for the countless strategies and tactical plays that you have learned over the length of your careers.
without the pressures and routines of strict training regimes, you all reignite the very roots of your ardour and fervour for ice hockey. no longer is it about the scores and making it into the playoffs. no longer is it about winning the championships to gain the acknowledgement of other people. no longer is it about the trauma of betrayal, injury and defeat you have experienced.
playing is simply the thrill of skating liberally with no burdens across the ice. it is the feeling of thriving when your blade connects with the puck and sends vibrations up your arms. it is the rush of adrenaline as everyone moves in tandem with the same singular thought in your heartsâthat you love ice hockey with your entire lives. and that in itself is already more than enough, even without a gold trophy and championship title to prove it to yourselves.
for the last five years, the boys have had the leaves of their trees forcibly plucked and removedâby family, by coaches, and by injuriesâŠbut now?
it is time for their flowers to bloom.
spring, 2025: playoffs
standing off to the side, you watch your boys listening attentively to the reporter who is conducting an interview with them. you have continued to stay out of the media spotlight where possible, not yet entirely comfortable standing in front of the cameras again, but your boys have quickly grown accustomed to media coverage ever since their popularity gained traction thanks to their undefeated streak in the regular season.
the interviewer glances down at her prompt card before asking, âso tell me, what has been a major contribution to your success this season? your team has made a name for yourselves as the undefeated champions so farâquite a contrast to how you started off last season.â
seonghwa laughs cordially with her. âwe were getting used to a lot of changes last year so our teamwork and mentality wasnât the best,â he admits. âour agency gave us some time off to recalibrate, which really helped us to focus on building ourselvesâas individuals and as a team. i think we learnt to place our unconditional trust in one another and our coach. we still play with a dominantly offensive approach, but weâve been adopting different playing styles and experimenting with them, so this relies heavily on believing in each other.â
yunho nods, gesturing for the microphone to add, âas cliche as it may sound, a huge part of our growth was also learning how to accept loss. this wasnât just in the context of being defeated in the semifinals but in the wider lens of our past mistakes, relationships, and even situations that we could not change.
âit has been a tough journey for a lot of us over the last year, but we were lucky enough to have each otherâs support,â yunhoâs nostalgic smile reflects your own as you realise just how far both you and all of your boys have come. âonce we were able to let go, it meant that we could enjoy our career for what it truly isâplaying the sport of our dreams together, every day.â
the reporterâs ears perk up in interest at the segway to probe and she jumps on the opportunity to ask, âi am sure many of your fans have been curious for a long time. is there a special somebody who has supported youâor any of youâthroughout your journey?â
yunho passes the microphone to the hand that has extended out to reach for it. itâs san this time, who has a charmingly confident persona that he takes on whenever he answers questions during interviews. good thing too, because their fans are going to need something to distract them from understanding the confession he is about to make.
âthere is. we all do, actually,â his deep voice rolls off his tongue like butter. the way he smoothly talks with a flirtatious smirk never fails to make you swoon. âfunnily enough, we all met our girlfriend at about the same time.â
off to the side, wooyoung sends a wink in your direction and you have to muffle a snort with your hand and divert your glance away. the structural framework of the stadium ceiling suddenly looks very interesting. san stands there incredibly smug at his joke that he knows nobody but you and the boys will pick up on.
by the time you tune back into the conversation, the reporter has moved onto the next question. âlast year, you lost to the white tigers in the semifinals. how do you feel about facing them again later today?â
due to a spike in popularity, the korean ice hockey league had to divide its teams into two separate groups for the regular season matches this year. both the red devils and the white tigers had been placed in different groups and by some twist of fate, had ranked at the top and then seeded accordingly on either ends of the tournament brackets. now, your team faces theirs in the very last game of the season.
the finals.
âweâre quite excited, actually,â jongho responds. âwe have been wanting to play against the white tigers again some day and i donât think it gets any more fitting than meeting them in the finals. they have some incredible players but like seonghwa mentioned before, weâve been working hard to adjust our playing style to suit the situation. our coach has put in a lot of effort to hone in on our strengths and weaknesses, so no matter what todayâs outcome is, weâre confident that it wonât be an easy win for either team.â
âi am sure the finals is going to be a thrilling match. now, speaking of coaches,â the interviewer starts and you can see hongjoongâs hand twitching subtly at his side, ready to step in and deflect the question need be should it pertain to you.
she continues, âhow does it feel to play against your former coach?â
yeosang and mingi frown, unable to neutralise the confusion on their faces. hongjoong smiles calmly, ultimately taking over the microphone as he apologises, âsorry, could you please elaborate your question?â
it is the interviewerâs turn to fluster slightly but she nods quickly, âyou must not be aware, then.â
your eyes dart back and forth as you try to recall whether there is a crucial piece of information you have somehow missed or forgotten to tell the boys. the tone of her voice foreshadows something that makes the pit of your stomach churn.
âlast year, the white tigers had a stand-in coach, so you probably did not know.â she says her next words carefully and despite the bustling movement that fills the entire stadium, you can hear the exact moment all of your hearts drop.
âthe coach of the white tigers is coach yeon, your teamâs former coach in 2018âŠand heâs here today.â
you are the first to rush back into their locker room. frantically, you grab the official guide that had been given to you by the ice hockey league prior to the start of the regular season from out of your bag. you flip through it, team profiles upon team profiles blending into a hazy blur of faces as you find the one you are trying to look for.
ây/n,â somebody gently murmurs from behind you but you do not register their call. you continue to flick through the pages and when you find the profile for the white tigers, you scan the top of the page for a certain name with a shaky finger.
head coach: yeon ha joon
âoh my god,â you breathe out, hands lowering to your sides and gaze wavering. how the fuck had you managed to miss it this entire time?
you are not the only one affected by the revelation. the change room is pervaded by unease and restlessness, and wooyoung paces back and forth despite hongjoongâs attempts to get him to sit down. hongjoong himself cannot even remember how he answered the question about coach yeon, only that he had somehow excused themselves not long after to cut the interview short.
âhow is he still a coach?â seonghwa furrows his brows.
wooyoung stops pacing and your eyes are drawn to him when he suddenly blanches, âwhat if coach yeon is doing the opposite now and paying other teams to let his own team win?â
âno wayââ ââi wouldnât put it past himââ ââsurely not?â the boysâ voices overlap at the speculation.
it is a valid speculation based on what they have told you in the past about coach yeon. however, you stay quiet, suddenly aware of the fact that it is not something that would favour you should it be true. you gnaw the inside of your cheek because as much as you know that your boys would not suspect you, you still worry that doubt may cross their minds at one point, even if only briefly.
âunless the money he offered every single time was equivalent to the prize money, itâs highly unlikely the teams would have all accepted, right?â jongho points out.
yunho shrugs nonchalantly, âbut even if they did, we all know that coach yeon would never be able to bribe our girl.â
the way everybody immediately agrees expels some of the anxiety within you, filling you with reassurance and security that starts to relax your chest instead. wooyoung chooses that moment to finally sit down on the bench beside you. he adds, âweâre too whipped for you, so even if you were bribed, we would probably ask whether the money was enough and if you wanted more.â
san chucks a water bottle at him. despite yourself, you laugh and admit, âthat isâŠstrangely comforting.â
âsee,â wooyoung triumphantly boots the bottle back at the older. âshe gets it.â
seonghwa intercepts the pitiful bottle before it becomes weaponised and sets it down next to him. âshe wouldnât accept the money in the first place.â
âexactly, so why does any of this matter?â mingi suddenly questions.
yeosang knits his brows together as he states the obvious, âitâs coach yeon.â
âand?â mingi mirrors his expression with genuine confusion.
it is quiet in the locker room. the coach of the white tigers is indeed coach yeonâŠand so what? what exactly about the revelation has pushed you all to the edge of the cliff?
mingi cocks his head. âwhat iâm trying to say is, does it make any difference whether he is their coach or not? think about itâregardless of how he got his team to the finals, he has no unfair advantage over us. thereâs no way that he has bribed a fixed win in the finals, and he has no access to any insider knowledge that could jeopardise our tactics and plays.
âthe only leverage that he âhasâ is a psychological advantageâif we can even call it that. but weâre not the same boys who were too naive and powerless to do anything about it six years ago. if anything, we can easily turn this to work in our favour because i donât know about you guys, but iâm ready to drag his ass through the mud. what we said earlier about not caring for todayâs outcome? nah, fuck that. weâre going to fuck him up and show him that he messed with the wrong people.â
he takes everybodyâs silence as misunderstanding of his last statement and he hurriedly clarifies there is no violent intent, âby winning. fairly.â
âdamn,â jongho whistles. âyouâre onto something for once.â
mingi clambers over seonghwaâs legs to grab the forgotten bottle and it goes flying across the room with violent intent. âdude, what the fuck,â mingi grouses.
the dull thud that resounds when jongho holds sanâs leg pad up to block the projectile is enough to shift the mood in the room entirely. you finally relax into hongjoongâs side and he moulds you closer to him with the arm that he snakes around your waist as you both watch the locker room erupt into familiar pre-game mayhem.
yunho immediately scoops up the bottle and pitches it again. san stands to the side worrying over his poor leg pads as jongho uses them to bat the makeshift ball. his impressive accuracy makes you wonder whether they would have made it just as big as they are now had they formed a baseball team instead, but then yeosang narrowly dodges the bottle before it gives him a black eye, wooyoung cackles in the background, and you think better of it.
seonghwa joins you both on the bench and amongst all of the mischievous chaos and raucous laughter, you feel at peace, your hands clasped tenderly in the hands of your two captainsâin unity, trust and love. you affectionately squeeze their hands with unspoken conviction.
you know your boys are going to play well; you just have a good feeling.
the energy in the room spikes exponentially as you huddle together one final time before you walk out of the locker room, through the hallways and to the arenaâone final time before you step out to the ice rink as the red devils, playing in the final match.
you and your boys stand in a circle as close as it is physically possible with their bulky pads and game jerseys that they wear so proudly. it is indiscernible where one of you starts and where another ends from how intimately you all press together. your huddle is a woven nexus of arms and your hearts pound as one entity.
everyone learns of the juxtapositions of the world early on in life. there is no light without dark, there is no happiness without sadness, there is no spring without autumnâŠand there is no victory without defeat. not a single one of your boys has made it this far without falling at least once, and the conscious thought makes your heart swell and your throat constrict with overwhelming emotion.
somehow, you manage to choke out, âi am so, so proud of all of you.â
yunho and seonghwaâs own eyes start to heat up with wetness. from your side, san kisses your temple with feather-like tenderness, âand weâre so proud of you. y/n, you have grown just as much as we have.â
âthank you for being our coach,â hongjoong murmurs into your ear from your other side, the tip of his nose softly nuzzling you.
wooyoung reaches out to thumb the round of your cheek, âand thank you for loving us when we found it difficult to love ourselves.â
you had always viewed your injury and career with anger, bitterness and anguishâŠbut you have finally come to terms with it. in the process of healing, you have learnt to love yourself, love eight other people, and to be loved. you have had your golden days as an athlete and you are now living your golden days as a coachâ
âthe very coach of the red devils, your team of boys who are living through their golden days as athletes, and you are going to lead them to victory in the finals.
swiping at a tear that slips down your cheeks, you grin. âboys, letâs win this match and then,â you pause as you meet their determined gazes, their smiles wide with uncontainable excitement, the tension in the room electrifying and palpable.
âletâs go international.â
you may have all fallen beforeâas athletes, as coaches, as a teamâbut you will always stand back up together, because at the end of the day your dream is theirs and their dream is yours. and like autumn, the leaves fall for a reason; they must fall before the spring flowers can bloom to their full beauty.
and bloom your flowers have.
#loren writes#ateez fics#ateez fic#ateez x reader#ateez ot8 x reader#poly ateez x reader#hongjoong x reader#seonghwa x reader#yunho x reader#yeosang x reader#san x reader#mingi x reader#wooyoung x reader#jongho x reader#ateez fluff#ateez angst#ateez scenarios#ateez imagines#ateez oneshot#ateez au#hockey ateez
1K notes
·
View notes
Text
⥠Ateez & Their Favorite Part of Their Chubby Gf's Body âĄ
⥠A/N: This one (as with anything I do tbh) is for my chubby babes out there so I hope you enjoy it my darlings. Make sure to check the warnings under the break. Love you to pieces - xoxo your chubby godmother
⥠Pairing: ot8!ateez x chubby!fem!reader
⥠Genre: smut/fluff
⥠Word Count: 1.5k-ish total
⥠Warnings: oral sex (m & f receiving), swallowing, nibbling, kissing, marking, spanking, doggystyle, nipple play, tit sucking, dry humping, riding, manhandling, some dom vibes, rough sex, unprotected sex, cumplay, hair grabbing, mirror sex
⥠Hongjoong âĄ
Hongjoong loves your body, that isnât even a question, but the first thing he noticed about you was that pretty face of yours and thatâll never stop being his absolute favorite thing about you. You have the sort of eyes he could get lost in forever and a smile that gives him butterflies every time he looks at you. Donât even get him started on how kissable your cheeks are. Theyâre always so soft and fluffy, especially when his cockâs buried between them, your glossy lips wrapped around his thickness as your head rocks up and down his length. He likes to stroke your cheeks while you look up at him, feeling them flutter around him, your tongue squirming against the throbbing veins of his cock. Nothingâs hotter to him than seeing your cheeks get even fluffier when theyâre all filled up with his cum right before you swallow him down like the good girl that you are.Â
⥠Seonghwa âĄ
Seonghwa has made such a habit of tracing your stretch marks with his fingertips that itâs become a mindless act at this point. Youâll never have to feel shy or ashamed when you discover new ones because he finds them beautiful. Itâs to the point where he doesnât even need to have his eyes on them to know theyâre there. On days when youâre feeling a little insecure he likes to take you into the bedroom and bend you over right in front of the full length mirror. Heâll grab your hair, not letting you take your eyes off of your teary eyed reflection for a second. Not only does he want you to see how you take his cock better than anyone else ever has. He wants you to see how hot those stretch marks look riding your curves. He whispers words of praise to you that only make your nipples stiffer and your pussy wetter. By the end of it all youâre leaking enough to make a little puddle on the floor and youâve cum so hard you can barely talk but you feel like the hottest girl in the world.Â
⥠San âĄ
Sanâs been staring at your ass all day. It doesnât matter if youâre wearing the tightest dress possible or a loose fitting pair of sweatpants. He knows what a perfect ass you have and anytime it's in his line of vision he gets the irresistible urge to touch it. Thatâs why he has to do everything not to cum too soon when youâre bent over in front of him, your knees buried in the mattress and your ass poked up in the air begging him to spank it. The recoil the first time he thrusts his cock into you is enough to make him drool. Your ass jiggles so wonderfully when he fucks you like this, your walls clamping down around him each time he slaps your ass to tell you how well youâre taking him. The sound of his palms snapping against your skin is so heavenly. The only thing better is digging his fingers into your plush ass when youâre both about to cum. It feels so soft and warm beneath his touch that he doesnât want to let go.Â
⥠Yeosang âĄ
Yeosang never lets you think for one second that you were too big to get on top. He loves to grab you by those plush hips and pick you up. The perfect place to set you down is always in his lap, kissing you hungrily while you ride his cock. Your hips are so soft and full, the perfect thing to squish during sleepy morning sex when neither of you are in a rush to get anywhere and youâre riding him slowly, savoring the feeling of his length throbbing deep within your pussy. Your hips are also perfect for when he wants to get more dominant, that extra cushion letting him grab you as hard as you like while he manhandles you. With his hands controlling your hips every move you make is under his control. He can keep you right where he wants you, pounding his cock harder and deeper into a pussy thatâs just so dripping and needy that he canât stop. Afterwards heâll always massage your hips, still keeping a hold on them as you come down from your high, your soft body cuddled up to his.
⥠Jongho âĄ
Jongho pretends that he doesnât like to cuddle but you know better than anyone else what a lie that is. His favorite thing to do is to lay in bed with his arms wrapped around your curvy figure and his head resting on your pillowy breasts. On rare occasions itâs enough to put him to sleep but those occasions are very rare. More often than not he finds himself trailing kisses across your cleavage, his bulge rubbing against your leg as his tongue dips between your breasts, tickling the sensitive skin. It gets him even harder when you arenât wearing a bra and he can freely take handfuls of your breasts, rolling your stiff buds between his fingertips while hushed moans dance from your lips. He kisses them through your clothes at first, teasing your nipples through your thin shirt until the materialâs damp. The second your shirtâs pushed up, your breasts bouncing free, his lips are wrapped around your buds, licking and sucking them to the point that your panties are drenched and youâre silently begging him to fuck you.Â
⥠Yunho âĄ
Yunho doesnât care what you call them. Love handles, rolls, whatever. Call them what you like as long as you remember that heâs such a sucker for them. Thereâs no need for shapewear or only putting on clothes that hide them. Yunho wants them on full display. In fact, itâs best when youâre in nothing but a bra or completely naked so that his large hands can spend all the time they want exploring your body, worshiping your love handles with his touch so that you feel just how sexy he finds them. Itâs so hot for him when youâre laying side by side, one of your legs wrapped around his waist, his cock inching into you as his hands ride up and down your form. This way he can grip your sides tighter, tilting you back to drill into your sweet spot at the perfect angle. Or he can wrap his arms around you completely, keeping you so close to him that he can feel every single detail of your pussy as you clench him so tightly, your juices leaking down his cock, making a total mess of the both of you.Â
⥠Wooyoung âĄ
Wooyoung is feral for your thighs. Itâs especially bad when the two of you are at home and you decide to walk around in nothing but your panties, your delicious thighs on full display just ready to be praised. Heâs on you in no time, pinning you down on the bed or the couch to kiss and nibble on them until he hears you letting out those cute little giggles that he loves so much. It never stops there though. The kisses always deepen until his tongueâs running along your smooth skin, leaving hickeys behind as he suckles at your tender flesh. Before you know it his fingers have found their way between your thighs, tugging your soaked panties to the side to play with your plump clit, his tongue at the ready to lap at your juices. Heâll spend as long as he can like this, his tongue buried inside of you, your thighs wrapped around his neck, eating you out until youâre gushing all over. Once you're spent, he takes the initiative to clean you up. Every single time itâs with his tongue and he wonât stop until heâs tasted every bit of you. Â
⥠Mingi âĄ
Mingi has such a thing for your belly that itâs not even funny. Itâs better than any plushie in the world when it comes to comforting him when heâs stressed or just giving him something nice to cozy up to. This man will take every opportunity available to squish your belly and is super vocal with you about how much he adores it. It doesnât matter to him if you gain a little weight, that only means that your belly will be even softer to touch and kiss in whichever position he chooses. Mingiâs always had his kinks but being with you has led to the discovery of a new one. After youâve cumâand he always makes sure you cum firstâhe likes to rub the leaky tip of his cock through your slick folds, arousal dripping down your perky clit as he strokes his cock over top of you. His eyes are glued to your twitchy little pussy, your belly just bouncing against the head. Once heâs right at the edge he likes to move up to your belly, tapping his cock against it to watch it jiggle so beautifully as hot, white ropes of his seed spill all over you.
#ateez x reader#ateez x you#ateez x chubby reader#ateez smut#ateez fluff#ateez hard thoughts#chubby reader#plus size reader#hongjoong smut#seonghwa smut#mingi smut#yunho smut#jongho smut#yeosang smut
1K notes
·
View notes
Text
texting boyfriend! ateez while they're away
*im going through pcd STILL, this has helped kind of cure it
warnings!: mdni, some cursing & dirty jokes
(this is also my first post so bare with međ)
#ateez fanfic#ateez x reader#ateez texts#ateez imagines#kpop x reader#hongjoong x reader#seonghwa x reader#yunho x reader#yeosang x reader#mingi x reader#san x reader#wooyoung x reader#jongho x reader#ateez fluff#first post#ateez crack#ateez scenarios#ateez ot8#ateez
1K notes
·
View notes
Text
ATEEZ Reactions Masterlist
Unless specified, I write a mix of idol!ateez and non-idol!ateez for reactions.
You breaking up with him as a prank.
You run away. (Mafia!Ateez)
You dancing with another male idol in front of him on a show.
You want to take a break after an argument.Â
You faint.(idol!reader)
Saying something hurtful to you during an argument.(Mafia!Ateez)
You catch him cheating on you.
Your friend tries to flirt with him.
Overhearing and misunderstanding something you said.
Rumors of you dating another idol. (idol!reader)
Disapproving of you smoking.Â
You make out with your co-star for a movie/drama.
Your ex wants you back.Â
You ask him to buy pads. (Text version)
You get injured.(celeb!reader)
You ignore him as a prank.
Watching an erotic movie with you.
Finding a positive pregnancy test (but it isnât yours).
You come home late after an argument. (Mafia!Ateez)
Youâre his bestfriend and you kiss him/he kisses you.Â
âI had a dream about you . . . you were my sleep paralysis demon.â (Text Version)
You call him a âfriend.â
You tell him to sleep on the couch after an argument.
He accuses you of cheating on him. (Mafia!Ateez)
Sitting on their lap during a bumpy car ride.
He finds out youâre a spy from his rival gang. (Mafia!Ateez)
You prank him with lyrics. (Text version)
Someone hitting on you. (Mafia!Ateez)
He finds out that he has a child. (Mafia!Ateez, Dad!Ateez)
He gives you an inkigayo sandwich. (Idol!Reader)
You wearing their clothes.
Being on the same show as you. (idol!reader)
You being affectionate/horny when drunk.
Youâre his / heâs your wallpaper.
You kiss him out of the blue.
Confessing your / his feelings after an arranged marriage. (Mafia!Ateez, arranged marriage au)
His child interrupts him during a meeting / work. (Mafia!Ateez, Dad!Ateez)
Youâre his love interest for a movie/drama.
Leading him/you on as a prank.
#ateez#park seonghwa#ateez x reader#kang yeosang#mafia ateez#choi san#song mingi#jung wooyoung#choi jongho#kim hongjoong#jeong yunho#ateez kang yeosang#ateez ff#ateez scenarios#ateez angst#ateez drabble#ateez fluff#ateez imagines#ateez reactions#ateez san#ateez san imagine#ateez suggestive#ateez fanfic#wooyoung#yeosang#ateez fic#ateez yunho#ateez yeosang#ateez wooyoung
2K notes
·
View notes
Note
yeah that kitty hybrid san fic drove me insane. so, iâm here to ask for a little requestâŠ
sub!hybrid!wooyoung and sub!hybrid!reader being left at home together and needy so theyâre trying to please each other clumsily but then owner!ateez come back to find them like that. you can decide what kinda hybrids they are, and what goes down when they come back :3
little accidents
summary: Hongjoong and Seonghwa make a mistake in trusting their two kitties to be left alone. genre/pairing: owner!matz x kitty!fem!reader x kitty!wooyoung, smut wc: 1.8k warnings: SMUT MDNI, degradation, meandom!seonghwa, hongjoong less so, mommy kink, leash kink, humiliation kink, creampies, breeding kink, reader is in heat, background seonghwa x hongjoong bom note: anon i love u for this request and iâm so sorry i made u wait for so long. also hope u donât mind that i made this matz instead of ot8! pls enjoy<3
Itâs hard to push Wooyoung off of you, his stubborn lips persistently pulling quiet moans out of you. Heâs trying to tug your shorts off, but Seonghwaâs voice is in the back of your head at every harsh tug Wooyoung gives. You know that once you start you wonât be able to stop. Youâd rather remain in the good graces of your mommy today, his furrowed brows and tiny frown apparent on his elegant face before he left.
Seonghwa knows youâre in heat. Hongjoong, ever the sweetheart he is, is uneducated in the fact that you two should be separated at this time. However, they both have responsibilities and jobs to attend to. He thinks youâre well-behaved enough to resist your primal urges, at least until he can get home to take care of you. Seonghwa never realized moving in with his boyfriend would be so stressful.
A soft whine builds in the back of your throat as Wooyoung licks the skin along your neck, the coldness of his drool greeting you when he moves to kiss along your jawline. He sees every tic your body gives, remembering every little thing so he has you weakening faster. His tail wraps around your calf as you let yourself be pushed back onto the bed-your mommyâs bed-the furry, black thing sending waves of tingles throughout your body.
Wooyoung wonât let you catch your breath, âCome on. I know youâre in heat. You just-you gotta let me help,â Wooyoung has never been around another hybrid in heat before. Heâs surprised to find it written on you so clearly, desperation etched into your features. He canât help it when his hands move on their own as he watches you hold your insides as if youâre in some sort of pain, holding back all of his urge to claim you.
You try to crawl away, the control he has over you with just his body and voice too overwhelming. The patterned blanket under you reminds you of your mommy, and you flip your body over to try to crawl upwards. You donât get very far as Wooyoung drops all of his body weight on top of your back, his hard ready cock pressing against your pussy. The feeling of it makes you whine, Wooyoung taking advantage of the position and dragging himself over you repeatedly.
He holds your neck like heâs preparing to bite you, but he takes a whiff and closes his eyes, âYou smell so ready for dick, kitty.â
His voice is shaky, like heâs barely holding back. His grip on you is bruising, the hand on your hip holding you in place under him. His veiny hand holds your jaw up, forcing you to look him in the eyes every time his leaking cockhead makes your shorts wetter with every deliberate drag. Youâre entranced by his twitching ears and swishing tail.
âBut mommy said-â
He shushes you with an open-mouthed, wet kiss, âThey donât have to know. Iâm just helping you,â
Youâre losing to the desire in you, the primal need to just be bred, âWoo, I need it so bad.â
Whatever desperation was in Wooyoung unleashes with your admission. He practically envelops you with himself as his hands come down to your tits, quickly finding their way under your tank top and over your sensitive nipples. He plays with them, flicking you over and over until you keen and part from his lips. Thereâs really no escape from Wooyoung because even if you stop kissing him to catch your breath, he latches onto whatever part of your warm skin he can find.
One of his hands slides between you and the bed, into your panties. He groans at how drenched you are, pussy begging to just be filled and bred. He plays with your folds, teasing and spreading your slick over yourself. Wooyoung gathers it all on his fingers, bringing his hand up to his lips and sucking every digit clean. He closes his eyes in bliss at the taste, truly enjoying how your pussy is leaking, creaming, and begging for him.
He leans back into your ear, now hurriedly trying to pull your shorts off, âIâm gonna fill you up, kitty. Can I?â
âY-yes, please, just fill me up, Woo-â
He shudders at your words, finally getting your shorts off. Thereâs no time to waste as he messily pulls his cock out of his sweatpants, not bothering to slip out of them fully. He just needs to feel you wrapped around his cock. He plunges into you, quickly and deeply. Wooyoung fully melts into you, possibly forever consumed by the feeling of your tight hole now. He doesnât give you a chance to adjust before he hungrily starts thrusting his hips, growling into your ears everytime he feels you clench.
The way he fucks you is desperate and raw, one goal set in his mind. To fill you with so much cum youâre spilling and only babbling about all of the kittens heâs going to give you. Just the vision of his cum trickling out of your sweet hole has him stopping, shuddering in place to try to make this last at least a little longer.
You feel him pausing but youâre way too overheated and desperate to be filled to give him a break now, âP-please, Woo, can you cum inside me? I can take all of it, please-â
Thatâs all it takes for him to plunge deep inside of you, his canines piercing your shoulder as his body shakes and jolts with every sputter of cum entering you.
A tiny part of you is soothed now, but thereâs still a burning sensation that lingers everywhere in your body. The uncomfortable feeling starts in your gut and unravels all over you. You turn to pant and whine to Wooyoung for more, but you find heâs gone from atop you. Hongjoong and Seonghwa stand next to the bedside, Hongjoong holding Wooyoung back by the scruff as he hisses and scratches at him. By the looks on their faces, youâre certainly in trouble.
-
Hongjoong fucks you relentlessly. He groans into your ear, dick smearing Wooyoungâs cum and your slick all over. His breath is hot against your cheek as he leans over your back and invades your space. He smirks at Wooyoung when you let out a sweet, needy whine as he grinds his hips into yours as deep as he can.
Wooyoungâs shaking with need. He canât do anything but watch as his cum is fucked out of your pussy by Hongjoong. Heâd claim you again if it werenât Seonghwa-who holds him back by his collar. His fist wraps around the leather tightly, tugging him back every time Wooyoung tries to make a move towards you.
Seonghwaâs usual sweet demeanor is gone and replaced by a demanding one, âThe both of you are so fucking naughty,â
You turn to Seonghwa, teary-eyed as Hongjoong keeps drilling you into the bed, âS-sorry, mommy,â
Your voice shakes against Hongjoongâs thrusts. He picks your head up by the back of your head and Wooyoung watches as your back arches against Hongjoongâs cock. He fucks you savagely, reaching deep inside you with his member until you can feel it in your throat. The position has you yowling and clenching down onto Hongjoong, who hisses as his hips stutter in their thrusts.
You look so broken and pitiful and Seonghwa fucking loves it. Thereâs slick and cum running down your legs, tears streaming down your eyes, and your tiny hands hold the bedsheets tight under your palms. His breathing turns ragged, his fist tightening impossibly more against Wooyoungâs collar.
Hongjoong brings a hand down to your clit, pulling you in until your back hits his chest, âI see why Youngie canât stay away from this pussy,â
You let out a shaky breath as you turn into putty under his hands. He rubs circles onto you, playing with your wetness as he keeps grinding you onto his cock. His other hand fondles your tit, tweaking the sensitive bud. Itâs all too much, too good, too fast.
Seonghwa lets out a sharp, mocking laugh as he watches you break, âThis is what happens to bad girls who donât listen to their mommy, sweetheart,â
Thereâs another rush of wetness that comes from your hole and Hongjoong chuckles, âThink she liked that,â
Hongjoong lifts you by your hips now, moving you so that you face Wooyoung as he sets you atop him. You blush with all the attention, but Hongjoongâs cock doesnât let you think. He holds you by your sides, tight and hard enough to leave welts, as he bounces you on his cock. You feel it everywhere, your entire body warm and on the brink of explosion as he perfectly fills your gummy walls.
Hongjoong feels you on that brink, âCum on my dick, baby, then Iâll give you all the kittens you want,â
The thought of his cum swirling inside you, marking you and filling you finally sends that tingle of electricity all through you. You shake on top of Hongjoong, who follows suit and pulls you to his pelvis. He groans and stutters as your pussy tightens and sucks the cum out of him.
Wooyoung is whining and rock hard, to the point that it hurts. Youâre so sweaty and cute on top of Hongjoong, freshly fucked out but Wooyoung still wants to fuck you fill of his kittens. Seonghwa isnât any better off, but he tskâs and pulls on Wooyoungâs collar when he feels him start to get antsy.
Hongjoong sends a sick, cocky smirk towards Wooyoung. He smells trouble, but he doesnât expect Hongjoong to spread your pussy lips for him. The pearlescent liquid shines between your folds as Hongjoong pulls out of you and Wooyoung all but collapses. Your hole is utterly and completely stuffed, claimed by Hongjoong and he feels his entire body on fire.
Seonghwa moves him until heâs right in front of your leaking pussy, forcing him to his knees. He sends a mean, intimidating look to Wooyoung. Itâs demeaning and embarrassing the way he follows his commands so easily, but he just canât help it.
He raises an eyebrow at Wooyoung, âWell? Clean up the mess you made, you pervert.â
He doesnât think twice. Youâre still recovering from the earth-shattering orgasm you just had, but Wooyoungâs wet tongue against you wakes you up again. Your hips grind against his lips as he licks a stripe along your folds, cleaning off the essence of Hongjoong. Seonghwaâs cold hands against his neck spur him on.
Wooyoung sucks on your clit, lips wrapping around the sensitive bud and causing an intense warmth to gather in your gut. You canât stop moving against his face as he slurps you up, the vibrations of his moans against you just amplifying the sensation. He lets you go with a pop before moving down to your entrance, hands forcing your legs open as he works you open. He doesnât mind the taste of Hongjoongâs dick or your slick, just as long as he gets to taste you.
Seonghwaâs cocky smirk shines down on you, commanding your attention, âMy perfect kitty.â
#ateez#ateez x reader#ateez imagines#ateez fic#ateez oneshot#ateez scenarios#ateez texts#ateez smut#ateez fluff#ateez fanfic#ateez wooyoung#ateez hongjoong#ateez seonghwa#ateez seongjoong#jung wooyoung#jung wooyoung smut#wooyoung x reader#kim hongjoong#hongjoong x reader#park seonghwa#park seonghwa smut#seonghwa x reader#kim hongjoong smut
2K notes
·
View notes
Text
The trace of you
Author: bvidzsoo
Pairing: psychiatrist!Jeong Yunho x patient!female reader
ê€ Warning: bullying, mistreatment, ptsd, mentions of insanity & abuse, mental health talks, psychiatric diagnose, unethical thoughts and actions ê€Â Word count: 25.1k ê€Â Rating: mature ê€Â Genre: dated around the late 1800's, psychiatrist x patient, lots of yearning, mutual pinning, forbidden love, inspired by Alias Grace, angst ê€Â Summary: Being caged inside your home for a wrongdoing you can't even remember seems to not have the effect people have been expecting. With the arrival of a foreign doctor with studies unheard of before, your life takes a new turn. Will Doctor Jeong prove your innocence, or will he fall into your web like everyone else? Are you sane, or is he just as insane as his patients?
A/N: Helloo, my lovelies! ^^ Wrapping up this story took way too long due to me having some unplanned health issues that are still (?) kicking my ass...anyways, keep in mind while you're reading this that there are probably historical inaccuracies to this story, especially to South Korean history that I briefly read through when constructing Yunho character's background. The dresses MC wears also aren't the most accurate, but I hope you can look past that and imagine instead whatever you'd like. I watched the mini-series Alias Grace and was rather inspired by it, so you will find similarities to it within this story. I am no medical professional, so the diagnosis MC is given might be inaccurate even though I have taken my time to research these things. Let me know if I should tag anything else as a warning, and I really hope you enjoy this story as I have tried making it a bit different. Let me know your thoughts about it, I am always excited to read your feedback! <3 Oh, and, I hope Santa brings you something sweet tonight, this is my not so small present for you all! ^^ divider
           The old clockâs ticking seemed to only get louder by the second. The sheer curtains were pulled to the side to allow more sunlight inside the tea room, the grand doors opened to let in the late fresh summer breeze. The white hydrangeas lining the paths leading towards the back garden were gorgeous and carried a strong scent with them, I could smell it from my spot on the soft faded pink cushion of the sofa brought all the way from France. The tea room had been remodelled not long ago. There was something about it that gave old cottage vibes, but it has now been upgraded to a more fashionable Parisian feel. It was pretty, with hues of light peach and a darker coral, however, I used to like more the cosy feeling of the sage green and baby blue colours that had decorated the room once. Karina liked it more this way, she had said something about the lighter colours giving the impression of a bigger room. I did not understand why the tea room was required to look grander than it already was, but I didnât question her judgment. It was best if I didnât, not out loud, at least.
The servants were quietly waiting outside the room as my mother paced in front of us, Karina perched on a fancy chair with an abandoned book in her hands. I knew the ticking of the old clock and the silence was driving her mad, but I remained silent as I gazed forward, eyes on the gravel path. I longed to walk in the meadow close to our house, but I wasnât allowed to roam around on my own. Even inside my own home, I was under constant surveillance. The doctors have said it was for my own sake, but it felt like I was in a continuous cage. It was suffocative, I couldnât sleep some nights due to it, not even after drinking Mrs. Humphreyâs delicious camomile tea. My last hope resided in summer, in the warm breeze that kissed my cold skin, everything a lush green where I looked, to keep me sane. As sane as it could, since I was deemed a madwoman long ago.
Unlike the others who hired chauffeurs and dated carriages with old horses, this doctor arrived by a fancy patent motorcar. It wasnât him driving it, at least the servants had whispered that to each other, but his long wool coat looked expensive too. My mother finally stopped pacing and Karina sighed in irritation when there was a knock at the front door. One maid stepped forward and opened the door for the doctor, gently greeting him. I couldnât hear his voice, I was trying to catch the song of the birds outside, but I could feel the shift in the air. It was warmer inside as if the sun had stepped through our threshold. It warmed my skin like none other. Finally, the doctor was led towards the tea room, my back to him as my lips moved in a whispered song that comforted me. If I ignored the coil of my stomach and the sheen layer of sweat over my brows, I could convince myself that I was fine. That whoever came to check on me wasnât another vicious man eager to torture a damned soul like mine.
âMy apologies, maâam, I am unfamiliar with these roads.â The manâs voice was deep yet soft, like honey, thick but inoffensive. At least if I told myself that, it calmed my rapid heartbeat. As I continued sitting rigidly, my fingers wrung together, the tremors never disappeared. It was something natural, the other doctors have concluded, something they couldnât fix about me. Another thing they couldnât fix about me. It was fine, I knew I had been damned a long time ago.
âOh, it is no issue, we are glad you made it, Doctor.â My motherâs voice was filled with deep relief as the crease between her brows finally disappeared, hands locked behind her back as she rushed towards the entrance. Karina was surprisingly silent, but her expression spoke volumes. Her eyes had widened and her mouth had parted, fingers barely clutching the book in her hands anymore. I gulped, trying to steady my irregular breathing. I knew what was coming, the same questions and objects this doctor, too, would use to check my stability. I dreaded it all, I wanted to scream and throw a vase and make it shatter against the ground, but I would only be deemed even crazier. My eyes shook when I heard footsteps approach, heavier than those of my mother or Karina, it was the man. The Doctor. He was coming further inside, I could feel his eyes trained on my nape, no doubt curious and with a glint madder in his eyes than in mine, here to dissect me, pick me apart just to never fix me. I saw polished black shoes stop before me, and the lump in my throat almost made it impossible to speak up.
âMiss Harold, my name is Doctor Jeong Yunho.â Then, unlike any other doctor had done, this oneâs knees bent until he was crouching in front of me, looking at me. His eyes were round and kind, a dark brown unlike my icy ones, and they were filled with warmth and softness I hadnât seen in any other man. His nose had a perfect slope and his fair skin was sun-kissed, the apple of his cheeks a rosy red. His lips werenât too big but pouty and full, asking to be traced gently by soft fingertips. I shuddered, completely taken aback by his youth and beauty. The man was from faraway lands, yet judging by his speech, you couldnât tell until you saw him. He was gorgeous, he was breathtaking, âWould you feel safe if it was just the two of us in this room?â
No, I wanted to scream. My fingers tightened against each other, I gulped and hesitantly nodded, our eyes spilling into each otherâs as if a spell had them locked together. His features were serene and sincere, not a frown on his beautiful face to create creases, just a soft smile pulling at his lips. It was disarming and frightening at the same time. Then, the doctor smiled even wider as he stood back up, his height intimidating. My heart raced as I watched him, unable to take my eyes off him. And he was still looking at me as he spoke up, âIf you could excuse us, Iâd like to speak to Miss Harold in privacy. It wonât take long, I promise. Iâm only here today to familiarise myself with her.â
âGood, yes, Doctor, whatever you need.â My mother sounded reassured as she gripped Karinaâs arm, yanking her out of the tea room as she seemingly didnât want to go. Her eyes were fixed on Doctor Jeong, and her cheeks were blushed, âWould you like a cup of tea before we leave?â
âNo, but thank you, Mrs. Harold.â The doctor hummed, his voice warm, as he sat across from me. He had no leather tool bag, nothing. He only carried a ragged satchel bag, a dark green with patches made to it, and it seemed mostly empty. My heart couldnât settle down, not yet. Maybe his tools were hidden in the pockets of his long black coat. He hadnât taken it off, and he looked like he wasnât planning on staying for long. I couldnât decide whether that thought reassured or unsettled me even more. Silence stretched on as we stared at each other, my throat dry, but I made no moves to drink from my fine China cup. I gulped when the doctor finally moved, reaching inside his bag. Here it came, the torture for the next hours, he was just like all those other doctors. I could feel tears prick at my eyes and my chest felt on fire, my lungs constricting, but the world seemed to stop moving when the man finally retracted his hand from inside his ragged bag. He held no tool to harm me, instead, a slightly withering daisy was gripped daintily between his long fingers.
âI plucked this for you on my way here, Miss Harold.â The doctor spoke, leaning forward to extend his hand towards me. A daisy, from a man like him. A man who felt like the sun itself, warming my cold particles, how unusual. When I did not move to take it from him, his happy expression seemed to fall slightly. Before he could feel more disappointment, I quickly leaned forward and grabbed it from his hand. Our fingertips brushed for a second and the doctor gulped, loudly. I loved wearing my copper hair in a simple bun, lined with fresh daisies. How coincidental that I had made myself a daisy crown just this morning, and now, the doctor had brought one for me. It wouldâve been endearing if it was from a suitor, but I havenât had one since I was sent to the asylum.
âEverything has a price, Doctor, what must I offer in exchange for this?â I found my voice, less shaky than I had expected. My insides were twisting in every possible direction, my heart hammering so fast it made me feel lightheaded. I wondered whether Iâd remember the doctor tomorrow morning still. It wouldnât be the first time I experienced sudden memory loss.
The doctor frowned, sitting back on the couch stiffly, âPerhaps, your honesty? Will you answer my questions?â
âWill you measure my head and poke at my skin like all those other doctors?â
âNo, Iâm not here to physically evaluate you. Iâm here to glance inside your mind.â
âThat unsettles me more than getting cut open to determine whether my blood is still red or not.â
âHad they done that to you?â
âYes, you should rather ask what had they not done to me, Doctor Jeong.â
The doctor gulped, his dark eyebrows pulled together now and his lips downturned. He fished for something in his pocket, and a small pair of spectacles were placed low on his nose. It made him look more mature, more serious. I wondered if he wore it so that the other doctors would take him seriously, or whether because his eyesight wasnât the best.
âI wonât cut you open, Miss Harold, I wonât even touch you during my examinations.â My heart skipped a beat despite hammering uncomfortably against my chest, and I wondered why. His words, however, did bring a little comfort.
âHow will you determine what is wrong with me, then?â I raised my eyebrows, my fingers popping when I released the tension from them. I laid my palms flatly against my sage green dress, and the doctorâs eyes fleetingly glanced at them.
âBy talking, by listening to your stories and thoughts.â The doctor spoke of a practice I hadnât heard of before, âIf you trust me, that is, your secrets will be safe with me.â
âWill they be?â I smiled, a little ashen, âThe committee will want to hear what I said, there are no secrets we can keep with each other, Doctor Jeong.â
The doctor hummed, an almost amused smile pulling at his lips, âMy profession requires me not to disclose anything personal, so, even if the committee wants to hear it, I wonât relay our conversations word for word, Miss Harold.â
I gulped, analysing the manâs face. He looked sincere, his eyebrows didnât twitch and he wasnât sweating despite the coat still around him. It was summer, and it was warm outside, albeit not inside the tea room, that is why the grand doors were opened to let the warmth in. This room reflected a lot about how I felt on the inside, always cold and hollow, waiting desperate for the warm sun to fill me up with its hotness until it burned me away. I wanted to burn, I wanted to be freed of all I had to endure until now.
âYou need my honesty, but are you willing to be transparent with me?â My question seemed to take the doctor off guard as his eyes momentarily widened. Then, he clasped his long fingers together and placed his arms on his thighs, leaning forward in his seat.
âAs long as it helps us move forward and remains professional, I can be transparent with you, Miss Harold.â
âYou mustâve read the reports about me, do you think Iâm mad, Doctor Jeong?â
âIsnât everyone a little mad, Miss Harold?â
âI donât know, you are the doctor between the two of us, Doctor Jeong.â
âIndeed, and I claim that nobody is without faults or sins.â
âThen you must be a religious person, no?â
âMy profession contradicts my beliefs, yes, but I do believe there is something stronger and greater than us, Miss Harold. If we ask for forgiveness, we shall be pardoned.â
âFather Leon would love to have you at his service, Doctor Jeong.â
The doctor chuckled, a small smile settling over his lips as I realised I hadnât looked away from the man since he had sat down on the couch. That was news. I never looked anyone in the eyes, as I didnât feel comfortable. I had been told by previous doctors that they could see straight to my soul, my wicked mind and rottenness in the blueness of my irises. Now I never looked long enough to let them see what was inside my eyes, but this doctor didnât seem to be afraid of me, of what he might find inside my eyes. Could he not see the darkness of my soul? Or was his faith so strong he preferred to spot the brightness before he was proven wrong by the wicked that permeated those like myself?
âDo you believe in God?â Doctor Jeongâs voice was louder than before, more filled with emotion as if my answer was crucial to him.
âI suppose I must. Everyone says the devil was the one to make me act like this, and I wonder where had God gone to let the devil do this to me.â Doctor Jeongâs cheeks became a darker colour as he licked his lips, mouth parting, but no words left it. I hummed, placing my right hand over my left one. Doctor Jeong wore one single band of silver ring on his middle finger on his right hand. He couldnât have been married, then, I concluded.
âPerhaps youâll find an answer to your question once I have done my job here.â Doctor Jeongâs tone caught a solemn note, but I said nothing as he grabbed his satchel bag and adjusted the collar of his white shirt. I watched the motion, eyes glued to the fair skin of his neck even as the man stood. His ears were flushing red too, I wondered why. I suppose the summer warmth had gotten to him at last.
âYou are leaving already, doctor?â I asked as I looked up, standing when I realised he was about to depart. My mother had raised me with good manners, I would have even walked him to the front door if it werenât for Karina suddenly barging inside, her jawline set tight as she sent me a fierce look of displeasure.
âEager to have him all to yourself, sister?â Karinaâs voice dripped with venom as she rushed further inside, rudely grabbing the doctorâs arm. What if he didnât want to be touched? Karina lacked the awareness to consider that for a second. The doctor remained silent as he looked between me and Karina, and I just chuckled, looking down to the floor.
âI already have him all to myself, no need to be eager about it too.â The forced smile on Karinaâs face wouldâve satisfied me, but now I wanted both her and the doctor gone from my sight. My heart was racing again and I couldnât breathe well, the tremors of my hands wouldâve made me spill my tea if I were to drink from it. Perhaps Matilda could accompany me around the gardens, I wished to become one with nature for the remainder of the day.
âI shall see you tomorrow, Miss Harold.â Doctor Jeong bowed his head slightly before he let himself be dragged away by Karina, who sent me a glare that wouldâve scared anyone else but me. I let them leave as I crumbled back onto the sofa, suddenly feeling faint. I couldnât decide whether the doctor would pick my mind apart or not, and it was scarier that I had no idea how heâd do it.
           The air felt oppressive and thick, yet I could see the doctorâs motorcar approaching in the distance. Matilda had been kind enough to accompany me on my walk around the gardens, but she had rushed me back inside the tea room when my mother sent a butler to alert us that the doctor was fast approaching. Now, sitting on a chair by the open grand doors, I could see the dark clouds gathering around in the distance. It was as if they were trying to chase the doctor away, but he kept approaching until the motorcar's engine died down and his heavy footsteps echoed around the house. There was a knock at the door as my eyes watched a small white bird on a branch of a tree, my mind absent. The heavy footsteps approached further inside, and I turned my head to look up at the doctor.
âHello, Miss Harold.â He said with an easy smile on his lips, holding his satchel bag in both hands. He didnât wear a coat today, and the sleeves of his white shirt were rolled up. His nape was sweaty as the top buttons were unbuttoned. The heat had finally gotten to him, it could get rather cruel in this part of the county.
âHello, Doctor Jeong.â The smile came easily to my face. Despite only meeting him yesterday, my heart wasnât racing like before. Perhaps it was the absence of his leather tool bag and the fact that the man was so young and innocent-looking. Before we could proceed, however, there was a knock at the door.
âDoctor Jeong,â Karinaâs unmistakable voice called out with a shake to it, âWould you like some tea before you start yourâŠexamination?â
âThe heat is already killing me, but thank you.â He declined with a gentle flick of his wrist, yet Karina lingered in the doorway. She was only looking at the doctor, her favourite dress ironed out and tightly cinched at the waist. I turned in my seat and watched her with amusement. She wasnât subtle at all.
âMay I help you?â The doctor asked, sounding confused as Karina stood still and slightly jumped, looking down abashed.
âNo, Iâm sorry.â Then she finally departed, closing the door behind her as Doctor Jeong had asked. I slowly looked up at the handsome doctor, finding his eyes with ease as his spectacles were close to slipping off his nose again.
âWonât you sit, Doctor?â I pointed towards the chair, which was placed a decent distance away from mine, just by the other door. The breeze had picked up into a strong wind now, it blew inside and rattled the sheer curtains. I welcomed it with closed eyes while the doctor settled in, the rustling of paper caught my attention as I slowly fluttered my eyes open once again. It was silent for a second as I looked at the doctor, who was already watching me. His pouty lips were parted and his ears seemed to be red. As my eyes travelled all over his fair skin, I noticed the glint of something silver underneath his white shirt. It appeared to be a necklace, and once he leaned forward to retrieve a pencil from his satchel bag, I spotted a silver cross hanging off it. He really was a believer, then.
âDid you want to sit here?â The doctor asked as he leaned back in his chair, crossing one long leg over the other. I hummed, clasping my hands together in my lap as the tremors slightly subsided. My heart was at ease, it finally wasnât frantic like during breakfast and my walk in the gardens.
âYes, I find nature most beautiful during this time,â I answered the doctor, turning my head to gaze at the white hydrangeas. Their scent was so strong I could almost taste it in my mouth.
âSo, you like storms, Miss Harold?â The doctor asked and I chuckled, turning my head away when there was lightning in the distance.
âNo, doctor, Iâm terrified of storms.â I smiled as the doctor paused, he was jotting down my words in his notebook, I came to realise. He quirked an eyebrow, so I continued, âMy father died saving me after I had fallen off the ship, the storm was terrible.â
The doctor hummed, his eyebrows slightly furrowing as he quickly noted what I had just said, âAre you afraid of water, then?â
âNo,â I shook my head, our eyes meeting and staying locked as if we had been hypnotised by each other, âIâm only afraid of the destruction a storm can cause, even on land.â
âHave you seen many of those?â
âYes, our neighboursâ barn was destroyed just last month, it was terrible.â
âHave you helped him?â
âAs much as a woman can help, yes, I offered them my servants to help rebuild the barn.â
âThen youâre caring.â
âI suppose, if you say so, Doctor.â
âDo you not consider yourself a caring person, Miss Harold?â I smiled, watching the doctorâs expression even out as his pencil pressed a hole into the thin paper of his notebook.
âAs a doctor, do you care for your patients?â I raised an eyebrow, genuinely curious since I hadnât met anyone like him. If he dissected the mind, he must care for his patients, no?
âWithin the limitations of my oath and law, yes, I do care for them.â Then the doctor seemed to consider his next words, licking his lips as his eyes bore into mine. They were wide and dark, and it was easy to get lost in them, âAll I wish is to do is find a cure for them, to see them walk free of their shackles.â
âCan you cure madness, Doctor Jeong?â My voice sounded small, almost afraid. The doctorâs eyebrows furrowed as he averted his eyes, messily scribbling something down in his notebook. As I peeked at it, I realised the alphabet I was familiar with blended with one I did not know. Perhaps it was his mother tongue, then.
âEvery person has a trigger, Miss Harold, if I find yours, I can cure it.â Then, he bit his bottom lip, and the added words were silent, âIf youâll let me.â
Silence stretched on, and I felt my heart race for the first time since I had seen the doctor today. It was unsettling, I felt my cheeks warm up. The redness from the doctorâs ears seemed to spread down towards his neck and chest, I wondered if his skin was as smooth as it looked at first glance. Then, without considering my next words, I let the truth slip past my chapped lips.
âI want to be free, sir, I donât want to live like this for the rest of my life.â I had been young when I was convicted. My fate could have been much worse, but the men my father had been once acquittanced with owed him one, so they came to my aid. My sentence was very generous, the judge deemed me mad and unfit to be locked up in a womenâs penitentiary, and instead, I was bound to constant surveillance for the rest of my life. Even when I slept, Matilda was there with me. Or my mother when the maid was too tired to continue keeping watch.
The doctor wetted his lips again, leaning slightly forward in his seat. The pencil was clutched tightly between his long fingers, and his tone had dropped lower too, âI can rid you of your burden if youâre honest with me, Miss Harold, I can set you free. But for that, you have to tell me everything that happened and made you do what you did.â
âWhy wonât you say it, Doctor? Have you not read the reports? I was the talk of the whole town, still am, actually.â
âSomething isnât right about the reports, have you been truthful in your testimony?â
âWouldnât I be breaching the law if I wasnât?â
âPeople lie all the time, Miss Harold.â
âMay God forgive me for my sins, then, Doctor Jeong.â
A vein in the doctorâs forehead bulged as his jawline strained, mouth open but no words leaving his pretty lips. He huffed, then leaned back in the chair, eyebrows furrowing deeply as he wrote messily in the notebook once again. I smiled as I watched him, his black hair fell into his eyes as he looked down. His spectacles threatened to slide down his nose altogether, and I itched to fix it for him.
âLetâs start at the beginning, then, shall we?â The doctorâs tone had turned uncharacteristically soft as if he was talking to a frightened child. There was a fire in his eyes as he looked up once again and I gulped, feeling unsettled under his sudden undivided attention. His left palm pressed into the side of his thigh, his fingers tapping his black slacks rhythmically. I gulped, then nodded.
âWhat would you like to know about me, Doctor Jeong?â
âTell me about your childhood. Your likes and dislikes, who is most dear to you and why. Have you loved before? Do you feel lonely now? Just tell me everything that crosses your mind.â
He wanted to know everything about me. It felt unravelling, dangerous. He had said my secrets would remain with him, would he note them down in the language only he spoke? Or would he tell the committee right after he was finished with his examination? Taking a deep breath, I turned my head to gaze outside once again, my lungs deflating as I exhaled long and loud. The lightning was closer now, the little birds were nowhere to be seen. Something coiled in my guts as my fatherâs face flashed behind my eyes, his warm smile and his kind tone still so present in my mind. If he were still here, perhaps nothing wouldâve happened. There would be no Karina and Mr. Brooks, I wouldnât be condemned for life.
âMuch like I am afraid of storms, Doctor Jeong, Iâm afraid of solace. It hadnât always been like this, while my father was alive, I had never felt alone for even a second. Heâd take me to the woods on horseback, weâd pluck flowers for my mother and heâd teach me everything he knew about the fauna and the poisonous mushrooms. Heâd read stories for me before bedtime, and he had even taught me how to read. He was my favourite person, now itâs my mother and Matilda. Sheâs a young maid, we had found her hiding in the stable last winter. She was almost frozen to death, I thought I might be giving her a second chance at life if I took her in as my personal maid. She doesnât speak much and I canât tell whether she hates me or not, but I know she loves it when I take her on walks in the garden. I think sheâs a little bit like me. Out there, in nature, we can both pretend to be free, just two girls roaming between flowers and giggling about the future.â The doctorâs hand seemed to be moving with my words, it was as if he tried to capture and note down everything I said. For that sole reason, I didnât speak quickly, I let the words settle both in his mind and on his paper.
âI suppose my childhood isnât anything special, I come from an aristocratic family, you must imagine what it was like. I was raised to have good manners and bow in front of men, but not without having an opinion and a mouth to voice them with. My father had been a fair man, he and my mother had always made every decision together, so he raised me to find a man who sees me as his equal and his other half. There had been moments when I had rebelled, I think that is only normal, but I was never a moody or explosive child. You can ask my mother about that, sheâll tell you so too.â I said as the doctor nodded along to my words, his eyebrows furrowed in concentration. I took a deep breath and watched his face as I continued talking, âThere was only one thing I loved as much as I loved my father, and it was ballet. But that, too, was taken away after I was admitted to the asylum. Ever since then, I havenât touched my pointe shoes. I had even asked Matilda to hide them deep inside my closet, my heart breaks anytime I catch a glimpse of them.â
A lump formed in my throat just from speaking about it, I could feel tears in my eyes as I watched the tree branches move violently with the strong wind. The willow tree looked gorgeous in the wake of the storm, and I wished nothing but to step under it and close my eyes, let the wind destroy my bun and rip the fresh daisies out of my hair. I took a deep breath, trying to ignore the dark flashes of memories I had tried to forget so badly. The asylum was a cursed place, filled with evil people who only caused more harm. I hated it and everyone that was associated with it. I could feel the doctorâs eyes on me, and he gulped, inhaling sharply. I glanced at him, and he looked amazed for some reason.
âCan you tell me about the asylum, Miss Harold?â My muscles tensed despite the doctorâs soft tone, and my heart started racing painfully in my chest. I thought wringing my fingers tighter together would stop the tremors from worsening, but it didnât. I felt lightheaded as my own shrill screams echoed in my ears, but I couldnât speak. My bottom lip shook as I took a breath through my mouth, and shook my head frantically, âAlright, itâs alright, Miss Harold. We wonât speak of it, take deep breaths.â
The doctor leaned forward in his seat and I rigidly turned to face him, my eyes wide in fear as I waited for him to strike. Maybe his mask would finally slip, maybe the tools were hidden inside his satchel bag. The notebook, his scribbling, my storiesâŠmaybe they were all just distractions. And yet, the doctorâs eyes remained kind and ridden with worry as he seemed to breathe through his mouth as well, as if he was mirroring my actions. I closed my eyes as the first thunder shook the ground, and inhaled deeply, keeping the air in my lungs until I couldnât no more. I released the shuddered breath and opened my eyes again, only to see the doctor gulp, loudly. His pupils were dilated and made his eyes seem completely black, his fair cheeks flushed deeply as his long fingers tightened around his pencil once again.
âPerhaps we should end the examination here, Doctor Jeong.â My voice was strained as I gulped around nothing, âThe storm is here. You should head home before it worsens.â
As if nature had agreed with me, the air filled with electricity as lightning struck not far away, the thunder loud and following shortly after. Doctor Jeongâs jaw tightened, but he nodded, humming approvingly. He swiped his bottom lip with his thumb before he grabbed his satchel bag, adjusting his spectacles as they did slip off the slope of his nose. Thunder wracked the earth again as a colder breeze billowed past us, ruffling my dress and the hair that had fallen out of my bun. It also moved Doctor Jeongâs messy hair, jelled back and out of his eyes in an attempt to make him look classy. As the doctor stood, slipping the notebook inside his satchel bag too, I mirrored him, smoothing down my dress.
âI call what we do here sessions, Miss Harold, and not examination.â The smile was easy on his lips and I hummed, flinching when the wind slammed the grand door of the tea room against the wall. Perhaps it was time to close them, âI shall see you tomorrow?â
âOf course, Doctor Jeong, please take care on your way home.â My eyebrows furrowed in worry as Doctor Jeong nodded, opening his mouth to say something just as the door to the tea room was yanked open. The man in the doorway was unfamiliar, but he looked worried.
âMr Jeong, we should go now if we donât want to be stranded somewhere on the road during the storm.â He must be the doctorâs driver, then. My mother appeared behind the driver, looking as worried as if the doctor was her own child.
âWe have guest rooms, Doctor, you could always stay.â My mother was a kind and loving woman, her intentions hardly questionable, âI would hate it if something were to happen to you.â
âThank you, Mrs. Harold, but I shall be on my way.â Doctor Jeong smiled widely, then faced me once again, and bowed his head much like yesterday. Perhaps it was their custom to take farewell like that, so, I bowed back to him. The doctorâs eyes widened for a second before his smile widened just slightly, and then he and his diver were gone, my motherâs expression was worried as she watched them leave from the front porch. Big droplets of water started falling from the dark clouds, and I quickly closed the grand doors as Matilda rushed inside to assist me. The rhythmic fall of the rain was a glaring reminder of my irregularly fast heartbeat.
The eyes were windows to oneâs soul, or so Yunho had been taught. He had dealt with many cases during his practice period, and now as a certified psychiatrist, he had gained even more popularity in the West. He had no choice but to move at a young age, the world was an ever-changing place. He was young and curious, he wished to explore and find people that needed his expertise. But there was something so mesmerising about her eyes which left him unravelled and flustered like nothing else. Her words dripped with honey, and Yunho could swear he heard angels singing, accompanying her soft tone whenever she told stories. He was captivated. He ached to write down every single word she uttered, he felt desperate to pick apart her brain, to look inside it, to fix her. He was desperate to understand what had triggered her manic episode, he was desperate to tell the committee that she was innocent. But he was a doctor first and foremost, and his job forbade him from any personal attachment towards his patients. But whenever he looked into her icy blue eyes, the breeze brushing the fallen copper strands of her hair against her sun-kissed cheeks, he felt his very own soul stir and reach out in desperation to connect with hers, to possess it. She was a madwoman, and he was a man desperate to stay sane in her company.
           Another thing I completely wished to be free of was dinners, where I was forced to sit with my so-called happy family. The bags under Mr Brooks's eyes had been getting darker and darker lately, and the creases in his forehead were an obvious sign that something was worrying him. But it wasnât my place to ask questions, so I continued to silently notice the small changes in his mood and behaviour. He had stopped pampering Karina, which was completely unheard of, and she was loud and clear with her complaints. She had wanted a silk nightgown just last week, but her father had denied her of it. He didnât mention the cause, he only said she already has more than enough nightgowns. The clinking of silverware gave me something to focus on as my eyes were cast on the brussels sprouts on my plate, pushing around it as I didnât enjoy their bitter taste. But Mrs Humphrey had cooked dinner with love, so I didnât want to leave anything on my plate tonight. The silence around the table was broken as my mother grabbed her glass of wine, her kind eyes settling on me.
âY/N, my dear, how are your examinations going?â I paused, feeling everyoneâs eyes in the dining room on me. I gulped down the food I had in my mouth and tapped with a napkin at my lips, letting my hands fall in my lap as I hummed. Doctor Jeongâs words rang clearly in my mind, what we were doing was called sessions.
âThey are called sessions, âma, and they are going well,â I spoke gently, hoping sheâd find my words reassuring. I knew she was constantly worrying about me, always fussing and around thinking I wouldnât notice. I might be absent-minded a lot these days, but Iâm mostly aware of my surroundings still. Mr Brooks nodded once, looking pleased as he wolfed down the steak Mrs Humphrey had made to be spicey, just like Mr Brooks liked it.
âThat is lovely to hear,â My mother beamed at me, meanwhile Karina scoffed under her breath, âDo you find communication with the doctor difficult, perhaps? Or is everything clear between you two?â
Mr. Brooks nodded along, one eyebrow raised as he watched me curiously. I adjusted myself in my chair and plastered on a little smile, âDoctor Jeong is well-versed and rather attentive. He notes down everything I say in his notebook, and meanwhile, I have noticed he scribbles along in his mother tongue as well, I find no difficulties understanding him. Heâs coherent and speaks English as if he was born around here.â
âThatâs a very reassuring thing to hear, my dear.â Mr Brooks spoke up with a smile, the corners of his lips tugging up. Karinaâs jawline was set tight as she let her fork clamper down loudly against her plate, her eyebrows raised mockingly.
âWhy are we letting her spend time alone with that doctor, again? How is that helping her?â Her tone was high-pitched, filled with blatant jealousy that Mr Brooks and my mother remained oblivious to.
âSweetheart, weâve discussed this already,â Mr Brooks said with a tired sigh, giving his daughter a disapproving look, âY/N needs a new medical approach, and Doctor Jeong is the best in this field. He came all the way here from South Korea when he was still just an apprentice. Iâve read up on him, heâs solved cases of mass hysteria and other mental issues no doctor could even come close to. Letâs not have this conversation again, Karina.â
Mr Brooks was mostly calling me insane to my face, but his words held no malice and I knew his intentions were pure. I couldnât resent him for wanting to find a cure for me, something that could finally fix me. He had no obligation to look out for me like this, I wasnât his daughter by blood, yet he had only treated me with kindness and understanding my whole life. He was a good man, perhaps a bit too absent from the household, but I could see in his eyes that he loved my mother dearly, and that was more than enough for me to accept him into our home. He couldnât replace my father, but he filled the void that sometimes got too much.
âI think she just needs attention,â Karina hissed under her breath as she slammed her fist on the table, making the maids behind her jump, âWhat are you waiting for, stupid cunts?! My glass is empty!â
âKarina,â My mother muttered, her eyebrows pulled together as she gave her a displeased look while the poor maid scurried to fill Karinaâs glass with wine, âA lady shouldnât use such vulgar language, nonetheless in front of her elders.â
âYeah, whatever Mrs Harold.â She scoffed as she glared at the maid, taking big gulps of her wine. I watched with distaste, catching Leiaâs gaze for a split second. Her eyes were tear-filled and I bit my bottom lip to stop myself from speaking up, it would only start an argument I didnât have the mental capacity for right now. But Karina wasnât done as her sharp gaze fell on me, her tone harsh when she spoke again, âI know you enjoy spending time with the doctor alone, it makes you fantasize, doesnât it? Youâre just playing with him like with everyone else around you, sister, arenât you? How long do you reckon until you get him riled up enough to get underneath your skirtsââ
âKarina!â Mr Brooks's voice was loud and stern, his eyes set on his daughter with disgust in them, âHow dare you say such things to your sister? In front of me and her mother, nonetheless! You should be ashamed, is this who I raised you to be?!â
Karina chuckled, humourless, âRight, father, you didnât raise me at all, perhaps that is why I am like this. Maybe you shouldnât have admitted mother into an asylum because she didnât know how to silence a crying baby, hm?â
The silence that settled over the table made my skin crawl. If anyone wouldâve dropped a pin, everyone couldâve heard it in the dining room. I released a shaky breath, the tremors worsening as Mr Brooks seemed to be struggling with containing his rage in front of my mother. Her mouth was open and a hand pressed against it, eyes shaking with pain and incredulity as she looked between Karina and her second husband. I took a deep breath and pushed my chair back, grabbing my plate to try and stabilise myself, to stay in the present. Eyes fell on me, and before Leia could come to approach me, I shook my head with a small smile, âIâll let Mrs Humphrey know she outdid herself once again, then I will be retreating for bed. Matilda will accompany me, sleep well tonight, mother.â
As I left the dining room, I heard Mr Brooks weakly whisper a good night, then Karinaâs sobs as she raced up the stairs, slamming the door to her room loudly. The chatter and good mood died down the second the kitchen door swung open, Leia following inside after me. Mrs Humphrey looked concerned when she noticed me holding my plate and went to stand up and take it from me, but I quickly shook my head.
âNo, stay seated, Mrs Humphrey, dinner is absolutely delicious.â I said with a smile, and the other servants and maids seemed to relax as well, âWould you mindâŠif I finished my dinner here, with you?â
âOh, come here, my dear.â Mrs Humphreyâs frown was deep as she beckoned me over, making space for me between herself and our butler, Jesper. He was still a young boy, his eyes filled with a youthful spark, full of life and happiness. He offered me a small smile and placed mushrooms filled with cheese on my plate, knowing I loved them. I chuckled and thanked him, then looked over the table and realised I felt most comfortable when around these people. They were simple, they were happy, and they made the most of their days. They were free, away from societyâs judgemental eyes, and they lacked the prejudice the other aristocrats hadnât even tried to hide around me. I felt like I belonged at this table, and as the happy chatter picked up again and Jesper made small talk with me, with Carla eagerly interjecting sometimes, I could feel my tense muscles relax and the void in my chest disappear. For a little while only, while I was still at this table, enjoying my dinner with the people who looked at me as if I was just a human too.
           The doctor was quickly growing on me. I couldnât trust him, not yet, it would be too soon. Itâs been only a week since he started visiting me for our sessions, but I started believing that he wasnât playing a character when around me. He was genuine, his eyes sparkled curiously with each question he asked, his frown was always worried and it downturned his pretty pouty lips, and when he smiled, something warm seemed to flood my chest. I could only compare it to the sun, for I have never felt such warmth when gazing upon a man before. Not even when suitors were lining up in front of our house, asking for a chance at marrying me. The doctor was considerate and kind, he hung on to my every word. It was his profession, I knew he was only doing his job, but I couldnât help but imagine he was a man interested in me, his notebooks filled with poems and sketches of me. It was a far-fetched fantasy, but it managed to warm my cheeks anytime I dwelled on it.
I was out in the back garden as I found myself thinking about the doctor again, excited to see him today as well. We had left off at a rather culminating point of my story yesterday, I wondered if he was as eager as I was to hear the rest of it. Matilda wasnât feeling well today, and as my mother was in town, Carla was the one supervising me. I didnât mind the change, she was a chatty girl and easily kept me from detaching from reality. Here, in the garden, as I thumbed at the leaves of the flowers, Carla was still speaking about an encounter with a fairy. A supposed fairy as she believed in God and deemed the little creatures spawns of evil.
âTell me, young miss, do you believe it was Satan sending those fairies my way?â Carlaâs voice was full of wonder, âHave I done something bad to attract his attention to me?â
âI donât believe so, Carla.â I answered her quietly, my eyes following a bee as it flew from flower to flower, âYou go to church every Sunday.â
âPerhaps I should go from now on every Wednesday and Sunday, too.â Carla huffed, hands on her hips as she tried avoiding the bee that was flying towards her. I chuckled, straightening up. The scent of the hydrangeas was familiar as I closed my eyes, inhaling it deeply into my lungs so that they would stay there for a long time.
âI donât believe fairies are inherently evil, Carla.â I mused as the breeze brushed upon my cheeks, already flushed from the great heat. My dress was thin and simple, I couldnât wear pompous dresses during summertime, they were too hot. I would often feel lightheaded from the strong sun, the thick dresses would only make me faint. The white fabric was soft against my skin, and the white ribbons brushed against my nape as my hair was pulled into two small buns at the base of my neck. I couldâve performed on stage looking like this, but even so much as looking at my pointe shoes wouldâve hurt my soul. I didnât let the memories resurface despite the sudden melancholia that wished to break through my emotions, âFairies are small creatures that protect nature, maybe you had done something they didnât approve of. Did you disrespect their land, perhaps? Or did you step on a flower they had blessed before? Fairies are territorial beings, and they are also quite vengeful. But if you ask Father Leon to bless you after service, Iâm sure youâll be just fine, Carla.â
The scoff that followed my words wasnât coming from Carla. I didnât open my eyes as I became aware of heavier footsteps approaching, I had completely missed the engine of his motorcar. I felt Karina stop behind me, but I turned my head towards the sun, basking in it. I couldnât touch the celestial without burning to a crisp, but perhaps the one it had sent to me in human form was really here to save me. A clear of throat made me blink my eyes open, and I turned to look over my shoulder.
âIf you have nothing else but fairies to talk about, then I donât see why Doctor Jeong should entertain your madness any longer.â Karinaâs eyes narrowed at me, âYou belong in an asylum, sister.â
I smiled, a little amused, as an ugly grimace appeared on Carlaâs face upon Karinaâs comment. The maid made to open her mouth, which wouldâve landed her in trouble, but the doctor beat her to it, âThank you for walking me here, Miss Brooks. But Iâd like to be left alone with Miss Harold, now.â
âRight,â Karina muttered, shooting me a jealous stare, âShe gets to have you all to herself, as always.â
Then, she turned around and raised her skirt above her ankles to storm off. Carla nodded her head and followed after Karina, not in a hurry so that the woman wouldnât pick a fight with Carla as well. The doctor sighed, pushing his small glasses up the bridge of his nose, looking a little bit bewildered. Then, he looked at me and the crease from his forehead disappeared. I was already smiling at him, my hands behind my back to hide the bad tremors. I had felt faint all day, but the doctor was here finally and I could finally take my first breath of fresh air of the day. I couldnât help but smile widely at him, and watch as the flush from his ears quickly travelled down to his chest. Even more buttons of his loose white shirt were undone, the silver cross sitting against his chest now glinting under the sunlight. His trousers were high-waisted and the shirt was tucked neatly into it, a leather belt pulled around his waist. And there, in his right hand, was something white. I tilted my head in wonder as I looked at it, curious about what it was. The doctor liked bringing small gifts, mostly silly, but memorable.
âHello, Doctor Jeong,â I spoke up, and the doctor released a loud breath.
âHello, Miss Harold.â His voice shook slightly, then his fingers tightened around the strap of his satchel bag, âHere, I have something for you.â
Then he extended his right hand out towards me, and my eyes widened in surprise. I could tell the ballerina was made out of a napkin, I hadnât seen anything like it before. My hands shook despite trying to ease the tremors, and my fingers hesitantly curled around the present as our skin brushed together. The doctorâs cheeks flushed rapidly, and I found myself unable to look into his warm eyes. I wondered if it was the heat that made our hands so clammy. I looked at the ballerina in my hands, melancholy overtaking me once again. I longed to dance around in the garden, Mrs Humphrey and my mother as my audience now that my father was gone, but it only brought back bad memories. I was too faint to twirl around now, my legs werenât as strong as they once used to be. I would fall even before doing my first pirouette, it was depressing.
âHow are you feeling today, Miss Harold?â
âFaint, but itâs from the heat, Doctor Jeong.â
We stood unmoving, our eyes boring into each otherâs. I didnât want to move to the tea room just yet, perhaps I longed to sit under the willow tree. The doctor made no moves, and so I said nothing about heading for the house. We were in eyesight if anyone were to look through the kitchen window, and we werenât doing anything wrong.
âThank you for the gift, Doctor Jeong, did you make it yourself?â I asked with round eyes, unable to keep the smile off my lips. The doctor flushed darker and averted his eyes, thumbing at his wet bottom lip.
âYes, I thought it would cheer you up. I hope I wasnât wrong.â His tone was tender and just a little hesitant, the doctor was almost cute like this.
âIt did cheer me up, sir, I was thinking about ballet just now.â I paused, and waited for the doctor to look up into my eyes, âIt seems you can already read my mind, I wonder how you do that.â
The doctor smiled, his forehead exposed as his dark strands were brushed away from his eyes, âWe are making progress, then, reading your mind isnât as easy as one might think.â
âAnd why is that?â I asked curiously, fiddling with the napkin in my hands.
âBecause itâs very complex, you like to speak in riddles, and you evade most of my questions.â Then the doctor chuckled and I bit my bottom lip, averting my eyes in embarrassment, âYouâre cunning, but Iâm good at catching all the little hidden messages.â
I grinned at the doctorâs words, my suspicions confirmed. I knew I could play around with him, he seemed like a very smart man. Hearing he could read between the lines was more than satisfying. My heart skipped a beat, but it didnât start racing like before.
âDo you like hydrangeas, Doctor?â
âTheir scent is too intense for my liking, but they are pretty flowers, Miss Harold.â
âThey symbolise purity and gratitude, even vanity in some cases.â
âWhat do they mean in your case, then?â
âGratitude, Doctor Jeong, towards you.â Our eyes met again as I looked away from the white flowers, a sudden calmness settling upon my racing thoughts, âI hope the end of my story will be satisfying to you.â
The doctor gulped, loudly, then motioned towards the house, âWould you like to continue inside? Did you remember something of importance, perhaps?â
âCan we sit under the willow tree?â I raised an eyebrow, âMrs Humphrey can see us from the kitchen if thatâs of worry to you.â
âSure, if youâll feel comfortable.â The doctor nodded, fishing for his notebook and pencil as I hummed, leading us down the pebbled path, the willow tree was just by the end of it. The territory the house resided on came with a small pond, I liked watching the still water while sitting by the trunk of the willow tree. The doctor followed after me quietly, and he watched me settle down into the green grass, dress splaying out around me. It had ridden slightly up, exposing my shins as I pulled them underneath myself. The doctor seemed to be frozen, eyes glued to where my legs had been just seconds ago. Then, he gulped loudly and settled down next to me. He sat a little closer compared to the usual distance between our chairs, but his presence was soothing. I smiled as I faced him, eyes falling on his long fingers as he got comfortable, opening his notebook to where we had left off yesterday.
âI donât remember anything new, doctor, but we havenât reached that part of the story yet.â I smiled, then turned my head to gaze out at the pond, âWould you like to hear what happens next?â
The doctor exhaled, âYou told me this noble boy barged inside your house in the middle of the night? He mustâve been madly in love with you to do such a thing.â
I chuckled, eyes focusing on the dragonflies above the pond, âI suppose he was at one point, yes. But men are easily converted, I find love like my mother and father had once shared hard to find, doctor. Our love didnât last long, but Iâm getting ahead of myself. It was a cold spring evening and he had been visiting, drinking with Mr Brooks to ask for permission to marry me. My mother was present too, of course, but she couldnât say much against Mr Brookâs words. In the end, the proposal was accepted and the man left, only to come barging inside hours later.â
âWhy did he do that?â
âBecause he was drunk, and because he had something to say.â
âDid you hear him out?â
I chuckled, facing the doctor. His eyes were wide as he was watching me, pencil pressing against the white paper, âYes, I did hear him out, but his words made no sense. He said something about a lavished lifestyle and a farmhouse, and something about being happy together even in a later age, it was endearing but very inadequate.â
âSo, what did you do, then?â The doctor wasnât even writing down what I was saying, it made me chuckle. The corner of his lips lifted subconsciously, he looked amused too.
âNothing, I just kicked him out and told him to come back when heâs sober. His drunken words meant nothing to me. I did not want to marry a man who made foolish confessions in an inebriated state of mind, besides, he was a gentleman. He should have known better than to barge inside a ladyâs home well past midnight, no, Doctor Jeong?â I quirked an eyebrow, my question seemed to snap the doctor out of his staring. He cleared his throat and looked down at his notebook, pausing for a few seconds before he jotted something down. I couldnât read it, it was in a foreign language.
âN-noâI mean, yes, Miss Harold. That was rather inappropriate of him, I must imagine the discomfort he had created for you.â He had barely finished his sentence when a giggle bubbled past my lips.
âOn the contrary, Doctor Jeong.â I grinned, ducking my head down to hide my amusement as confusion crossed the doctorâs features, âIt was the most fun Iâve had in a while. Mrs Humphrey, my mother, and I had stayed up for hours giggling about it afterwards. We even made jokes about it and Mrs Humphrey let us drink her very secret brew that tastes like flowers but could knock out even a sailor with just two jugs. I have no idea what it is, but itâs very strong.â
The doctorâs eyes were filled with awe as I laughed, memories of easier times never failing to bring me in a good mood. It wouldâve been easier like this, if things stayed put and if Karina wouldnât have meddled with everything. I have faced hardships before, but having the person I considered my sister to betray me had stung like none other. In the end, neither one of us got what we wanted, just a lot of animosity and a tension-filled relationship. Sometimes I wanted to ask Karina if all of it was worth it, but I knew not to entertain an already greedy person.
âAnd how does this memory make you feel now?â Doctor Jeongâs tone was airy, and he wasnât looking at me as he was scribbling in his notebook. I pondered for a second before I placed my hands on the grass, gripping it tightly between my fingers. Sometimes the tremors stopped when I grabbed something too hard.
âBittersweet, but mostly happy. Iâm grateful I was able to experience all of that at least once in my lifetime, others arenât as lucky as I am. I am well aware of that.â The doctor nodded along as I spoke, but then he paused writing and looked at me with a frown.
âAnd when you think of that man? How does he make you feel, Miss Harold?â I gulped, not having expected that question. But it was easy to answer, Iâve pondered many times over this specific question, there wasnât anything the doctor could surprise me with anymore. I smiled softly but knew the doctor could feel the shift in my mood.
âMostly angry that I wasted years on that man when I couldâve found someone more decent, more loving.â Then I shrugged and watched as the doctor licked his lips, adjusting his spectacles on his nose, âDo you believe that God has everything planned for us, Doctor?â
âMostly, yes, but we have enough free will to change the direction of our lives.â The doctor answered, his eyebrows furrowed in thought. I hummed, plucking the grass from the ground forcefully. My knuckles ached from how hard I had gripped onto it.
âYou canât run from what is meant for you, Doctor Jeong, we wouldâve never met if I wouldnât have gone mad.â But Doctor Jeong didnât seem to be too convinced by my words. He chewed on his bottom lip, sweat rolling down between his pecks. I gulped, then averted my eyes from his exposed fair skin, and instead focused on his beautiful round brown eyes, âAre you glad we got to meet?â
The manâs eyes widened at my forward question, but I meant no harm nor did I have questionable reasons to ask such a thing. The doctor cleared his throat, playing with the pencil in his hands as he thought his answer over, âIâll be glad once you are back to being yourself, until then, I cannot allow myself to feel any sort of satisfaction.â
âDonât you think my madness is part of me, now?â I muttered, gazing off towards the house. The curtain in the kitchen moved, but I knew it wasnât Mrs Humphrey. She was out in town with my mother at this hour. Doctor Jeong inhaled sharply, then closed his notebook loudly. The paper made a noisy sound, making me look over to him. The man looked aggravated as if my question had bothered him immensely, but I was merely curious about how he viewed me.
âPerhaps we should continue tomorrow, Miss Harold, and we must proceed with the story. The committee is pressing me with questions, they are very curious to hear the full story.â The doctor was avoiding my question, that was unusual. He stood, brushed the dirt off his trousers, then hastily grabbed his satchel bag and clumsily placed the notebook and his pencil inside.
âThank you for indulging with me, Doctor Jeong.â I looked up at him, and had to shield my eyes from the sun, âI love sitting under the willow tree.â
âI will keep that in mind, Miss Harold, have a nice afternoon.â The doctor then bowed his head and I mirrored his actions, then he was rushing back towards the house, looking a little rigid. Karina stood in the doorway to the tea room, a tray filled with cookies and lemonade in her hands, but Doctor Jeong merely nodded at her and left the house in haste. Karinaâs glare could be felt even from the distance, and I gently stood to head back inside, keeping the arrangement in mind. I wasnât supposed to be unsupervised, I knew Carla would be in the laundry room if she had nothing else to do.
Yunho couldnât sleep. He kept reading over and over his notes, all the small hidden messages making his head ache. His stomach growled in hunger, but he was physically unable to stand from his study and ask the housekeeper to prepare dinner for him. The girl was frail, she was soft-spoken but witty. She liked to keep him on his toes, and she was great at making him lose track of what was most important. He felt like he was making no progress, yet the committee kept pressing him for an answer. Father Louis was understanding enough not to ambush him with questions daily, but the rest of the officials werenât. They wanted a diagnosis of Miss Harold already, they didnât want to understand that Yunho couldnât give his verdict in anything but a week. Building trust took time, getting to hear the unfiltered truth from someone who loved to play with her words took patience. Yunho was a patient person, but he wondered how long he had until heâd break. Whenever he closed his eyes, he felt as if she was watching him, standing over him, smiling at him. Her skin was sun-kissed and sometimes her cheeks were burnt from staying out in the sun for too long, but Yunho knew her skin would be soft. When he had twisted and turned his napkin into shapes, absentmindedly, he realised he had made a ballerina out of it. Thus, he had made his first mistake as a professional. He had allowed himself to sympathise with Miss Harold. He had allowed himself to notice her smile was brighter than the sun itself, and that she smelled an awful lot like those hydrangeas that Yunho was allergic to. And he had allowed himself to notice the tremors of her hands, making him yearn to hold her frail hands between his with the hopes of soothing her nerves. Yunho wondered if she yearned for him like she had yearned for her once lover.
           The clouds were almost black as they expanded over the horizon. The wind was too cold for us to keep the grand doors of the tea room open, so they remained closed as I sat on the soft sofa, gazing out through the glass. Matilda had left the curtains undrawn for me, and a few scented candles were lit to ease my muscles' tension. I couldnât focus lately, these past three days my mood had quickly reclined. I know the doctor had noticed it too, but he didnât prod more than it would be considered rude. I was reluctant to tell him the cause of my moroseness, he wasnât here to listen to me weep about how unfairly Karina treated me. She had been ruthless these past three days. I knew she had a vendetta against me, but ever since the doctor started coming here, she had been progressively getting worse and worse. I could handle it until I couldnât. If I ignored her and got lost in a deep spot in the back of my mind filled with happy memories, I would end up with a backhanded slap to my face. If I talked back and stood my ground, I would only fuel her fire, giving her power over me. Karina was clever, she knew when to strike. If my mother was around us, she was an angel. If the servants were watching, sheâd be sharp and arrogant towards me. If Mr. Brooks was present, she didnât bother hiding her disdain, but she wasnât as straightforward as around the servants.
She didnât hold back one bit if it was just the two of us. My eyes were lost on the gloomy visage, eyes tracking the swaying vines of the willow tree. It was even more beautiful in the eyes of the storm, I couldâve stared at it for hours on end. My mind was silent like this, absent of all the turbulent thoughts that shook me to my core and kept me up at night, when Matilda, poor girl, struggled to stay up and look over me. Just last night, she had fallen asleep, and I was grateful because I had a moment to myself where I could secretly slip away and walk through the gardens in hopes of clearing my mind. It wasnât a smart decision, however, because I couldnât remember anything after I stepped through the threshold of the house. I just know sometime later I was gasping for air as my arms were restricted and my throat was scratchy, Mr Brooks desperately trying to hold down my trashing body. My white nightgown was dirty with mud and the ends of it were dripping wet with pond water. It wasnât foreign that I would lose consciousness if something lay heavily on my chest and gnawed at my thoughts, but it had been long since I had lost track of myself so deeply. Not since the incident, at least.
And Karina was enjoying it, her lips pulled into a nasty smirk as my mother cried by my side, asking Matilda and Leia to bring cold towels and help me clean up. Mr Brooks had looked tired as he gently helped me back to my room and tucked me into bed, his eyes pained and suffering as if I was blood-related to him. His expression made me feel guilty for worrying not just my mother, but also him. I felt terrible, yet I couldnât control my mind or my body when these episodes happened. Even now, as I sat on the sofa waiting for the doctor to arrive, I felt lightheaded and on the brink of losing consciousness. My body felt light and heavy simultaneously, and I could feel my pulse in my neck. My lips felt chapped no matter how much tea I drank, and my throat was tight. I wanted to see the doctor, I needed to tell him why I had done what I had done. I had always been too afraid to confess the truth, not wanting to hurt my mother and break up the second family she cherished. But I also couldnât continue living like this, not when Karina prayed for my downfall. Her harsh words from yesterday were still fresh in my mind, and I had to blink the tears away for a second.
âI know youâre just a whore, desperate to find another man to toy with.â She had spat with flushed cheeks, a cup filled halfway with wine in her hand, âDo you seriously think that doctor wants to touch you? Youâre a deranged woman now, Y/N, nobody will want you. Not even Doctor Jeong Yunho, you whore. I wonât let you have him too, you always get what you wantâbut not this time, Y/N, mark my words.â
And just when I had thought she was done, she had marched up to me and grabbed me by the throat harshly, making me gasp, âIf he doesnât send you to an asylum, I will kill you myself, Y/N. Youâre an abomination and a disgrace, even your own mother hates you, whore.â
The knock at the door startled me, I had been lost deep in thought. I turned my head and noticed Matilda giving me a small smile, âYoung miss, the doctor is here to see you. Would you like me to prepare anything for you two?â
My heart skipped a beat, but I couldnât tell why. Perhaps because I knew heâd take my mind off things, even if I was forced to relive the past I tried to bury deep down, sequences I couldnât even remember anymore. Or, maybe, it was because I desperately wished to gaze upon his soft face, lose myself in his warm and round eyes peeking at me over his small spectacles. I couldnât decide which was the reason, but I needed his presence to calm my turbulent mind and body finally.
âThank you. I will welcome him inside, and you can take a break.â I stood up, hands balling into fists as nausea washed over me, âWe wonât need anything, but I hope you get some sleep, Matilda. Youâve been watching over me for three days.â
âThat is my duty, young miss.â Then she bowed her head before I could tell her she needed to take care of herself, and she took her leave. I smoothed down my long-sleeved dark blue dress now that the weather wasnât as warm as days ago. I hadnât pulled my hair into a bun today, even if it was not ladylike, I wished to feel my copper strands brushing against my cheeks when I moved my head. It shielded my face like a curtain if I didnât want to be seen, I hoped Doctor Jeong wouldnât mind.
Sucking in a deep breath and bracing myself, I left the tea room in search of the doctor, who should have been in the foyer, getting rid of his coat and dress shoes, but instead, he wasnât there. I paused for a second to listen for his voice, and a smile pulled at my lips when I realised he was in the living room. Perhaps we could hold our session inside there today, I could play the piano and show him my favourite piece, if that, of course, was deemed fine by the doctor. As my fingers brushed against the wooden door, about to push it further open, I realised the doctor wasnât alone. Karinaâs sweet giggles flooded the room before she continued speaking.
âSurely, Doctor. I am pleased to hear you do not burn yourself out by coming here daily. I can only imagine how tiring it must be to listen to my sister, sheâs rarely coherent. You must have noticed, given that you are a doctor, that she often has no idea where she is or who she is talking to. She tends to get lost in her own mind and blabber on about nonsense.â Karina then paused as my heart raced, my eyebrows furrowed in distaste, âShe looks completely normal upon first glance, but it quickly becomes obvious sheâsâwell, sheâs insane, you know?â
âIâm sorry, Miss Brooks, I cannot be discussing this with you.â Doctor Jeongâs voice was neutral, and cold, unlike the tone he used with me, âBut as a licensed doctor, given that I am one, I can tell when her surroundings influence her mood, or why she is in a bad headspace.â
Karina scoffed, sounding a little offended, âAre you insinuating anything right now, Doctor Jeong? I donât need a license to be able to tell that my sister is insane. How long until you realise sheâs just trying to trap you here, twirl you up into her web of lies and fantasies? If you think you can help a mad person, Doctor, I fear you should seek help too. Sheâs beyond help, sheâs desperate and pathetic, and as I have stated, sheâs madââ
âI am not mad!â Before I could stop myself, I let my anger take over me as I barged through the ajar room, âI am not insane, Karina, youâre always putting words in my mouth! Who has ruined everything I have ever had, huh?! You, you did, so donât call me your sister. I am not your sister, and I will never be, you filthy skank!â
Karina gasped loudly, her hand flying up to her mouth. The doctorâs eyes had widened too, clearly taken aback by my outburst. I had been soft-spoken and kind in front of him, careful to not show anything he could incriminate me with in front of the committee. Karina had gotten what she wanted all this time, I suppose. Now, the doctor would make an early report that wasnât favourable for me without even hearing the truth, or as much as I could remember of it. I gulped, feeling ashamed as tears filled my eyes, but I tried to keep myself from crying. Karina wailing like a banshee next to Doctor Jeong was more than humiliating enough to force me to keep myself in place.
âEnough,â The doctor snapped, his friendly and soft features morphing into something of anger and vexation. For a second, I thought it was directed towards me, but then he turned his head and his warm chocolate brown eyes fell on Karina, now sharp, âThis is the last time I let you off the hook, Miss Brooks. If you donât stop treating your sister so poorly, I will have to write you up on the board as the main suspect that causes Miss Haroldâs turbulent manic episodes to occur, is that what you want? Do you wish to also be psychologically evaluated? I can do that, I can get one of my colleagues to come out here and question you, but you might be surprised to find yourself deemed insane too.â
Doctor Jeongâs words visibly shook Karina as she crumbled into an armchair, fingers sinking into her hair as she shook her head at the doctor, crocodile tears streaming down her cheeks pathetically. My heart was racing in my chest, the doctor was all I could see. His flushed cheeks from anger, his whitening knuckles around the strap of his satchel bag, his rapidly rising and falling chestâJeong Yunho had stood up for me, taken my side. He was my doctor, he was supposed to look out for me, but he wasnât obligated to protect me from claims that might be true. I didnât feel insane, I never had, but Karina might still be right. Maybe I was a danger to society and Doctor Jeong hadnât discovered why yet. It was only a matter of time until I exploded in his face, showing him my true colours. I had no idea what I was fully capable of, that part of my memory was still absent, but I could never forget the feeling of pure satisfaction and elation as I watched Karina lay on her back, gasping for air as blood trailed from her nose down to her mouth, chin, and then neck.
Doctor Jeong sighed loudly, his eyebrows furrowed as he licked his lips, shaking his head in almost disappointment at Karina. Then, he faced me and his features instantly softened. My heart raced again, and I hid my hands behind my back. Then, without many words, he came closer to me and nodded with his chin towards the stairs, âWould you mind if we skipped the tea room today, Iâd like a more private setting.â
I gulped, feeling lightheaded once again, âNo, the storm ruins the pretty visage either way.â
The doctor hummed as I turned around and took off towards the stairs, his strong footsteps loud behind me. My hands trembled as we ascended the creaky old stairs, my fingertips tracing the old railing. Doctor Jeongâs fingers were close to mine, tracing the same pattern as mine, so close yet so far away at the same time. I exhaled softly and tried to keep a clear head, but my nausea was getting worse as I led the way to my bedroom. My mother wouldâve been outraged by the idea of leading a man inside my room, but this was the doctor, he was here to help. I couldnât think of a more private room than my own bedroom, the heavy door closed and locked once we were inside. The doctor seemed to tense when he heard the lock, his back to me. I felt exposed, a little naked, now that the man was in my intimate space. There wasnât much to my room except for a desk filled with books and poorly done sketches, and a vase filled with daisies and tulips. The doctor headed for my desk, meanwhile, I headed for my bed. The sheets were satin and silky as I lowered myself onto the edge of my bed, letting my hands sink into the fabric. With a questioning glance, the doctor turned my chair around to face me and sunk into it with a heavy sigh.
âI apologise.â My eyebrows rose in surprise as I tilted my head in question, âFor letting your sister speak like that of you, I should have never let her go that far. I shouldnât have even let her corner me like that and-andâit doesnât matter. I understand if you need space after this, I might be able to convince the committee to give me a few more weeks.â
âSheâs not my sister.â I whispered as I wrung my trembling fingers together, looking down in my lap, âKarina is not my blood sister, Doctor Jeong. I might have viewed her once as a sister, but not anymore.â
The doctor fumbled around for his notebook and pencil, which had gotten smaller from having sharpened it so often. The doctorâs eyebrows were furrowed as he pushed the spectacles up on the bridge of his perfect nose.
âDoes this have to do anything with what happened on that day?â The doctorâs voice was gentle, understanding even. I bit my lower lip and nodded slowly, feeling my head swarm around uncontrollably. Would he know what to do with me if I were to pass out? He is a doctor, after all, but Matilda is the one who knows me best, perhaps I shouldnât have locked the door.
âShe-she reallyâhurt me that day, and Iââ My throat felt dry as my lungs started heaving for air, âI donât knowâmaybe I did want her to di-dieâI canât do this right now, Doctor Jeong, Iâm sorry.â
Doctor Jeongâs bottom lip was between his teeth as he suddenly let his notebook rest on the desk behind him. He leaned forward, lowering his head as he tried to make eye contact with me. I gulped and kept my gaze focused on my tremor-ridden hands, âListen to me, Miss Harold, we donât have to talk about it today. Iâm just here to chat, I can tell you are not feeling well. Your mother informed me through a letter that you had hurt yourself last night, may I know what happened? Can you tell me? I wonât even take notes, just this one time.â
I gulped, slowly raising my eyes to look up at the doctor. He wore a tight beige shirt today with a dark blue vest over it, his pants snugly fitting his long legs. The sleeves of his shirt were rolled up to his elbows, showcasing his fair and smooth skin, veins bulging through. The wristwatch on his left hand looked fancy, the leather a very dark blue to match his vest. Doctor Jeongâs dark hair was swept back once again, but it looked fluffier today. I itched to reach out and run my fingers through his hair, wanting to feel its softness for myself. I tensed my muscles before I could do anything stupid like that. The doctorâs cheeks were slightly flushed, and his tooth was leaving a small white dent in his bottom lip. Because he was leaning forward, there was less distance between us, but still respectable. Like between doctor and patient.
âIââ I chewed on my bottom lip before taking a deep breath, âI havenât been feeling well lately, Doctor, so I couldnât sleep last night. I went for a walk andâŠI donât remember what I did or what happened. Sometimes I lose consciousness while Iâm awake, itâs frightening. I woke up with a muddied nightgown and a cut on my arm, Matilda had patched me up though.â
âHow often does this happen?â
âNot that often.â
âDo you have an idea what may cause it?
âWell, yes. I think itâs Karina, sheâs been antagonising me for the past three days and Iâm so tired of it all. I just disassociate when I see her approaching me now, Iâm sorry.â
The doctor sighed, rubbing his bottom lip with his thumb. His spectacles had slipped lower once again, âDo not apologise, you havenât done anything wrong. Iâm just glad youâre alright, Miss Harold.â
âThe thought of you visiting daily keeps me afloat, Doctor Jeong, I have something to look forward to now.â I smiled, widely, and the doctorâs eyes widened before he blinked rapidly, looking stunned. Afraid the moment of lightness would pass by before I could grasp it, I continued, âWould you mind telling me your story today? What itâs like where you are from? How you were as a child? Is thatâŠis that unprofessional? Are we not allowed to speak about you, Doctor?â
Doctor Jeongâs gulp was loud, then he took a deep breath and slowly leaned back in his chair, his legs spreading wide. He looked conflicted for just one second, but upon a glance at my face, he gave in. I couldnât help but beam at the doctor as he chuckled, taking his spectacles off to place them on the desk behind himself.
âWhere should I even start?â He hummed, looking towards the window, lost in thought. He was gorgeous, and he was kind. I hadnât met a man like him before, I wished to trace my fingers along his jawline, but Karina was right. I couldnât be a whore, not with this man, âAs a child I was energetic and always blabbering on about whatever was inside my mind. I liked to ask a lot of questions, but I was reprimanded often for being too curious. Life isâŠdifferent in South Korea at this time, very much different compared to how things run here. I am lucky I managed to sail so far away, my family has made great sacrifices for me to end up here. Iâm not even able to send them often letters, itâs too risky.â
âWhy?â
âBecause they are in hiding, our belief in God is frowned upon, Catholics arenât safe there now.â To prove a point, Doctor Jeong grabbed the silver cross underneath his shirt and brought it forward, clutching it tightly in his hands, âI can bravely say it here despite the other religions that exist, nobody has tried to murder me for it, so far. Besides, I cannot tell whether they still live where we did before I managed to sneak onto a French ship and escape. The elite class isnât like the one here, itâs falling apart and I cannot be sure that my family are still part of it today.â
My eyebrows furrowed as an ashen look crossed the doctorâs face, âDo you miss your home?â
âYes and no,â The doctor answered truthfully, âI was young when I sailed here, I had nothing and no one until my foster father found me. He was a Dutchman, very kind but unforgiving. I got lucky because he was a doctor and I came here to study advanced medicine with the hopes of once returning home and spreading the word, but I cannot go back, not yet. Theyâd shun me away, shame me and possibly kill me. South Korea isnât welcoming of strangers yet, and in their eyes, Iâd be one too for leaving our homeland only to return with new doctrines. Even if it means saving hundreds of lives. Not that I work with the physical body, but everyone needs someone who can soothe their soul once in a while.â
âYouâre beyond courageous, Doctor Jeong, I admire you.â I sounded breathless as I closely listened to the doctor, making sure no word he uttered slipped by my ears. I wanted to know more about him, who he was and why he chose to be here. I couldnât imagine being on my own, out on the streets, away from my mother, âI promise not to waste your time here, Iâm almost at the end of my story.â
âI know, Miss Harold,â Doctor Jeong smiled softly, âRather an acquittance than your doctor, Iâd like to tell you that I look forward to our sessions. You are easy to connect with, and you donât make it hard for me to glimpse inside your mind. I cannot say I understand each choice youâve made, but thatâs the beauty of having free will and individual thoughts, it sets us apart and makes us unique.â
I couldnât help but blush as I averted my gaze from his intense one, feeling shy all of a sudden. The doctor wasnât calling me specifically unique, but the implication was there, and I couldnât help myself but imagine, âWhat about your home? What was that like, Doctor Jeong? And your family?â
For a second, he was silent. It made me think I had offended him in some way, but then his eyebrows slightly furrowed and he looked serious, âSince I am not talking to you as your doctor, you should just call me Yunho, if I mayâŠY/N?â
Hearing my name fall from his lips had my heart racing and my breath shuddering. I gulped, feeling speechless for a second as my eyes bore into Doctor Jeongâs, wondering if the man knew what it meant to drop such drastic formalities. But I obliged because I wanted his name to roll off my own lips like mine had done on his, desperate to fortify this frail bond between the two of us, doctor and patient, âRight, of courseâŠYunho.â
Doctor Jeongâs eyes fluttered shut for a second, his gulp was loud. I watched redness coat his ears down to his neck, his fingers digging into the wooden armrests. He was still wearing the silver band around his middle finger, I wondered whose it was. Was it from someone back home? Or was it from his foster father?
âRight, Y/N, well my home certainly was smaller than your house, and also built with different architecture in mind. And people donât wear these fancy suits at home, we have our own traditional clothes that we proudly wear. I still have the one I arrived in tucked away as a means to never forget where I come from.â Doctor JeongâYunhoâsmiled softly, eyes glazed over with memories as he spoke quietly, almost as if to himself, âI have a younger brother, heâs the loveliest. I didnât want to leave him home, not even my father and mother, but we wouldâve been discovered if we were to run away together. My mother sent me off sobbing, clutching me to her chest and wondering if weâd see each other ever again. My father was a stoic man, but he had cried too. He had enough faith in me and God to know Iâd make it out alive and become what they sent me away for. I left a dear friend behind too, but he promised to follow me one day. I do not know if weâll see each other, perhaps heâs wandering around on a completely different continent, but at least I have something of his with me.â
My eyes flickered towards the silver band Yunho was absentmindedly playing with, his lips set in a tight line. So, the ring was from someone he dearly loved and cherished, I wished I could reach out and pat his hand to offer him comfort. But Yunhoâs solemn look switched into one of contentment as he looked at me again, âOur house was in a lovely neighbourhood, filled with silence and the chirping of birds each early morning. Our servants were few, so they lived with us, and they had quickly become part of the family too. I would play in the dirt with my brother when our mother was busy in the kitchen, overlooking the cooks while also helping out. Our father worked long hours but he always returned with fresh flowers for my mother and some sort of western delicacy nobody was allowed to know about. I would often take walks on the beach, if thereâs anything I miss terribly, itâs the wide sea and the calmness it brought with itself.â
âI love sailing,â I muttered, tucking my hands underneath my thighs as I hummed, âDespite whatâs happened to my father, I find solace in the sea. It silences my fears, much like taking walks in the garden does. I feel like I belong to nature, that I can easily become one with it.â
âNature is a beautiful place,â Yunho hummed, swiping his thumb against his bottom lip, watching me closely, âYouâd love exploring the world.â
I chuckled sadly, âI would, Yunho, but Iâm forced to rot away in this house under the very eyes of my servants and family. I canât even be left alone here, sometimes I want it all to stop. Tell me, have you travelled a lot?â
Yunho looked abashed as he shrugged one shoulder, âEnough to see all sorts of places, people, and cases. Not each one had a happy ending, but I had learned something from each of them, so it was worth it in the end.â
âI wish to see the world, Yunho. I donât want to be caged in here anymore. Could you set me freeâno, will you set me free, Yunho?â
âIâIâll try, I really will, Y/N. If you tell me the truth, I can help you and write a promising report on your case. But you have to be transparent with me for that to happen.â
âWhat if they donât agree with you? See me as unstable and a danger to society, what then? Will I require a caretaker still?â
âIâm afraid, yes. Perhaps youâll have even more severe surveillance, Iâm sorry. I truly promise to do my best, but you have to trust me.â
âAnd what ifâŠwhat if you became my caretaker?â
The silence that followed my question felt heavy, it felt wrong. I shouldnât have asked that, but I was desperate to know how far Doctor Jeong would go to prove I wasnât insane. And perhaps, a hidden sadistic part of me wanted to know just what exactly the doctor would do for me, to me.
âThat would imply you are very unstable, I donât think Iâve ever heard of such a thing.â Doctor Jeong breathed out, reaching for his spectacles.
âBut would you become my caretaker?â I whispered, gazing up into his eyes with yearning as the doctor abruptly stood, âI wish to see the world, the places you go to. I wish to see South Korea once youâre allowed to go back, Yunho. Would you take me with you?â
He was packing his things frantically, breathing through his mouth loudly, âI cannot tell, Miss Harold, it implies great responsibility to look over someone unstable. Given if you were the object of my desires, I wouldnât even consider becoming your caretaker, but Iâm your doctor and itâs inappropriate.â
âIsnât it only inappropriate if you make it that?â I stood, facing the doctor before he could run off. He looked conflicted and angry, so I backed off, âMy apologies, I have taken you for granted and stepped over our boundaries as doctor and patient. I hope I havenât made you too uncomfortable, Doctor Jeong, thatâs not what I wished to do. I hope you can forgive me.â
âI will be back tomorrow, and you must tell me what happened, Miss Harold.â With a nod of his head, the doctor was at my door, quickly unlocking it, but he didnât twist the knob right away. He took a deep breath and released it with a whisper, âAnd I would become your caretaker, if I could.â
His footsteps echoed through the house just as lightning struck in the distance. I walked to the window and watched the doctor get onto the motorcar as his butler drove away, trying to avoid the storm. And then, just like that, the world started spinning as blackness threatened to coat my vision.
           My knuckles were bloody from having picked at the skin consistently since I was awake. The tremors from my hand have extended to my whole body, my head felt underwater. I couldnât understand what was happening around me, but I jumped each time thunder rumbled the earth. I know I had been placed on a chair in front of the window in my bedroom, Matilda sitting in the corner with my mother regularly checking on me, but I couldnât tell what was being said to me or done around me. I didnât have an appetite this morning, and getting out of bed was harder than ever before. I knew something was wrong, that something had disturbed my peace of mind, but I had no idea what this sudden change in my mood meant. I tried to break through the veil of haziness and speak to Matilda, tell her that my head was throbbing and my joints ached from how wrung up my body was, but my lips formed no words. I tried using the breathing technique Mrs Humphrey had once taught me, but nothing was working. I wasnât able to control my body, and it was only making me more anxious.
The door to my room opened, but I continued to look out the window absentmindedly, bracing myself for the loud rumble when lightning struck again. After the doctor left yesterday, it hadnât stopped raining ever since. I knew he couldnât make it today, but he was determined enough to push through the storm and visit me. Unless it was a serious issue that needed to be urgently taken care of, the doctor never cancelled our session. The thought of seeing him when I felt so unwell managed to calm my racing heart, but until he was actually standing in front of me and I could gaze into his deep eyes, I couldnât help but take shallow breaths as my muscles tensed up even more.
âLook at you,â It was Karinaâs voice unmistakably, âtrembling and sweating like a dying child, arenât you? Who are you acting for, hm? The doctor isnât here, Y/N, no need to act all pitiful like this, nobody in this house cares about you.â
Her voice was crystal clear for some reason, it made my ears ring as I released a shuddering breath. My mind was so askew that I couldnât even answer her, I just needed a warm embrace and a deep voice to whisper that everything was fine. Did nobody care about me? That was so depressing, it brought tears to my eyes.
âBesides, heâs not coming today.â I failed to inhale as Karina continued to speak, âHe sent a letter to your mother that he couldnât find a carriage in time, so he isnât coming. How tragic, all this acting only for him to not witness itâŠâ
The sound that left my mouth was quiet, but unmistakably a whimper. Matilda shifted in her armchair and cleared her throat. I could see Karina through the reflection of the window, she was smirking maliciously as she stared at the back of my head. She looked so pleased with herself, that it made tears stream down my cheeks. I wanted to say something, but the lump in my throat was getting tighter and tighter, I realised I had stopped breathing. Why wouldnât Yunho come? Was he like Karina too, did he not care about me? Did he lie to me yesterday? Was I worth so little that he couldnât take on being my caretaker? Why must this be my fate? Why must I be forced never to leave this estate, this house, trapped under the eyes of people who either hate me or pity me? I wanted to sob, but the more I tried to breathe, the quicker I realised dark spots had started appearing in my vision.
âI donât know what you two do during your little sessions, but the committee has given him one more week before he has to make his final report,â Karina chuckled, I heard her coming closer, fingers gripping the back of my chair, âAnd then, heâll be all mine. I already talked to my father and he considers Doctor Jeong a nice suitor, how exciting. You canât have him, Y/N, and he wonât have you either. I see the way you look at him, you are pathetic.â
Karinaâs warm breath fanned my ear and cheek as she whispered her last words, cackling like an evil witch in all those fairytales my mother had told me about. My mouth parted to inhale deeply, but the spots grew darker, becoming more.
âMiss Brooks, please,â I heard Matilda plead as she sprung up from her seat, âLeave young miss alone, she isnât feeling well.â
âOh, shut up, you silly goose!â Karina snapped at Matilda, throwing her a disgusted look, âYou and everyone else who feeds into her delusions should be admitted to an asylum, get a grip! Sheâs fine, she just needs her daily dose of attention, stupid girl.â
Hearing the word asylum cracked something further inside me as I sprung up from my seat, eyes wide and body cold. I looked at where Matilda was standing, but all I could see was the face of the man who found great pleasure in cutting me open just to leave me bleeding and helpless. A scream tried to tear through my throat, but I lost my balance as I tumbled to the floor, fingers digging into the floorboards painfully. Someone shrieked as my stomach heaved, but there was nothing to empty. I could hear the manâs words, his tone unbearable and scratchy as he told me I was worthless and a whore, hungry for male attention ever since my father had died. It made my skin crawl, it made me feel dirty and disgusting as I tried to scrape at my arms.
âMrs Harold!â I could hear the panicked screams, but I couldnât tell where I was anymore. I felt caged and in danger, like someone was leering over my shoulder, waiting for me to pass out so I could be targeted. I whimpered when I felt hands on my back and tried to slap them away, but I was forcefully hauled up to my feet. A wail finally tore through my lips, and I started trashing around when I felt myself being lifted off the floor and carried somewhere.
âNo! No, stop!â I screamed, my voice nothing but a screech as my nails sunk into whoever was carrying me, âDonât take me back there! I havenât done anything, please! Noâno! I didnât mean toâI donât knowâwait, no, please, Iâm sorry, stop!â
My body sunk into something very soft and warm as fingertips pressed into my skin, forcefully prying my eyes wide open. My lungs heaved for air as I tried to get away from whoever was touching me, but I couldnât, they were stronger. They were always stronger, I could never get away. They would never leave me alone, I was always their little experiment. They would cut me open as if I was a rat, they would ask me questions and whip me even if I told the truth, they liked to touch me and make me beg for them to stopâŠI wanted to die. I couldnât do this anymore. Why would they torture me like this? Did my mother not love me? Had my fatherâs ghost abandoned me?
âPlease.â I managed to whisper when my body finally froze up, all fight leaving it. My muscles and joints ached, my heart thumped wildly, and I couldnât hear my thoughts anymore.
âMy baby, please, stop.â A female voice pleaded above me, âNobody is hurting you, tell me whatâs wrong, baby. Iâm here, your mother is here, please.â
How could my mother be here? The asylum didnât let anyone visit us. My eyes burned when I opened them, but I couldnât see well, they were filled with tears. There, looming above me stood the one man I yearned for. His eyes were kind and brown like the most expensive Swiss chocolate, his skin fair with a rosy flush to his cheeks that made him endearing, small spectacles slipping down the perfect slope of his petite nose. The doctor was here.
âYunho, save me.â My voice was barely audible as I croaked out my words, but I noticed my motherâs eyes widening before I drifted off to the darkness that had come to claim my body. Here, nobody could hurt me.
But even in my dreams, the miscreants wouldnât leave me alone. I couldnât tell where I was due to the darkness that enveloped me, but I felt frozen down to the bone. My summer dress did nothing to keep me warm, and the little friction to my arms only caused me to shiver more. I tried to call out to see if anyone was there with me, but my vocal cords wouldnât even croak. My heart was racing and my eyes burned, I could tell I was in danger but I couldnât see because of what. The impending doom I felt, however, said to me that I needed to run and that I needed to run now. So, I didnât wait around as I grabbed the skirt of my dress and aimlessly took off, unable to see anything due to the permeating darkness. My feet hurt from all the little rocks that cut into it, and then something touched my cheek that made me cry out. It was warm, almost scorching hot against my frozen skin. There were whispers around me that I couldnât make out, or understand even if I concentrated on them, but then one of them started making sense. It made more sense than the others, its timber familiar and warm, kind. Then, I could feel fingers tracing my left cheek, a calming hum easing my tense muscles until I could finally take a deep breath. It burned my lungs, it felt as if I was inhaling for the first time.
âOpen your eyes, Miss Harold.â Then, just so that I only could hear it, the familiar voice whispered, âIâm here.â
A gasp tore through my lips as my eyes flew open, jolting me awake as I sat, frantically looking around. It was a lot darker in the room than the last time I was conscious, and the rain was hitting the roof of the house harder than before. Matilda, my mother, Mr Brooks, and Mrs Humphrey all stood at the foot of my bed, different emotions reigning on their faces. As I made eye contact with my mother, she let out a loud sob as she fell into Mr Brooksâ arms, and I felt my lower lip trembling. I hated seeing her in a state like that, worrying over me. Before I could cry too, my head was gently turned to the side until all I could see was the doctor. My mouth opened in shock as the doctor looked at me with sad, but worried, eyes, a wet rag clutched tightly in his other hand.
âYunho.â My throat felt scratchy as I reached out incredulously, wondering whether I was just hallucinating. I noticed my bloody knuckles were bandaged now, ointment placed on the nightstand table next to my bed, âYou are here? Really here?â
âYes, Miss Harold.â He smiled gently, hesitantly letting me touch his jaw, âHow are you feeling?â
âSick,â I said before I could mule over my answer. My stomach was aching and my head was thumping, âI donât know what happened to me, Doctor, I cannot remember.â
âDonât try to remember now, your body and mind are overwhelmed,â Doctor Jeong then gently guided me to lay down in my bed once again, âYou need to relax, Miss Harold. You fainted, and Miss Matilda has told me you havenât eaten all day long, thatâs unhealthy.â
âIâm sorry.â I felt like a child being chastised by their parent for the first time, except that Doctor Jeongâs face didnât look even a little bit angry like my motherâs had back then, âI thought I would throw up if I ate anything, still do.â
The doctor hummed, then slightly turned to look back at the others in the room, âMrs Humphrey, can you bring me that tea I asked you to brew? It will greatly help Miss Harold right now.â
âItâs storming outside, why did you come?â My eyebrows furrowed as I watched the doctorâs serene face, his spectacles were missing and his hair was a wavy mess on top of his head. Looking further down, I realised he wasnât wearing his fancy suit. Instead, the doctor wore a beige tunic with the strings undone, showing a silver of his collarbones and chest. His silver cross dangled between his pecks whenever he moved forward to check for my temperature, letting the cold rag ease the thumping of my head. The doctorâs boots were still on his feet and looked muddy, but nobody was paying attention to that as he sat on the edge of my bed, taking care of me.
âIâm a doctor, my duty is to ensure my patients are healthy and safe.â Then he glanced back at my mother and Mr Brooks, Matilda had left the room with Mrs Humphrey, âYou scared everyone, you scared me, Miss Harold.â
âThank you for coming, but what you did was unsafe, Doctor Jeong.â I gulped, eyebrows furrowing in worry, âHow will you get back home?â
âHe will sleep here tonight, sweetheart.â Mr Brooks answered for the doctor, looking just as worried as I felt, âCanât let him go out in this bad weather, itâs risky. I will ask the maids to make dinner for you, Doctor Jeong. The guestroom is already being prepared, your butler can sleep with the rest of the servants, if that is alright.â
âYes, thank you for your hospitality.â Doctor Jeong bowed his head, smiling at Mr Brooks, âIâm sorry to say this, but Miss Harold should rest now and the more of us are in the room, the bigger the risk of overwhelming her is.â
âOh, of course.â My mother whispered, her eyes glossy again, âRest, my dear.â
I hummed as I watched her and Mr Brooks leave, leaving me alone with Doctor Jeong as the door closed after the two exited the room. I sighed long, looking at the doctor as he removed the rag from my forehead to wring it in more cold water. We said nothing as he placed the rag back onto my forehead, gently removing wet hair strands from my cheeks. He sat close to my body, but his eyes avoided looking into mine. I gulped, trying to find the right words to say just as there was a knock at the door. Doctor Jeong told them to come in and Matilda came inside with a tray and a cup of tea. She offered me a sad smile as she placed the cup of tea on the nightstand.
âGet some rest tonight, Matilda.â
âBut you are not feeling well, young miss.â
âThis is an order, how long until you faint from exhaustion? Please, I wonât leave my bed tonight, you shouldnât either.â The maid looked hesitant, but didnât say anything other than a quiet âthank youâ, and then she was out of my room, closing the door after herself.
âSomeone should check on you tonight, though.â Doctor Jeong said quietly as he helped me sit up, puffing up the pillows behind my back. He grabbed the cup of tea and handed it to me. It was still hot, its scent herbal. My nose twitched as I took a whiff of it before tasting it, cringing away from it, âIt tastes horrible, I know, but itâs very good for your health. Drink it.â
It tasted so bitter I thought I would throw up on the spot, but it was supposed to make me feel better, so I toughened up and drank it as quickly as possible. The doctor watched me as I placed the cup on the nightstand, looking a little amused. I wrung my fingers together and placed them in my lap, looking down at my hands. I felt guilty for having forced the doctor to come all this way in such bad weather, yet he was looking at me with kind eyes and a soft smile.
âHow do you feel now?â He asked, turning his body more to face me.
âSlightly better, my head isnât thumping as violently as before, thank you.â I answered, sinking back into the pillows and cushions, âI thinkâthis could be a grave accusation, but what if Karina is the reason I am like this?â
I couldnât meet the doctorâs eyes as I chewed on my bottom lip, my thoughts whirling around too quickly for me to comprehend them. The doctor froze for a second, then I saw a hand reach out, only to settle on the blanket next to my thigh. I could feel Doctor Jeongâs body heat through the blanket, I wished he had placed his hand over my thigh instead.
âWhy do you think that, Miss Harold?â
âMay I call you Yunho?â
âOf course, Y/N.â
For a second, I paused and looked up with a smile. Yunho was already looking at me with a small smile on his lips, and I huffed a little embarrassed. Seeing him dressed so casually was doing something weird to me, my heart raced from excitement as I felt shy all of a sudden.
âJust like on that day, she was saying bad things to me again, antagonising me. I know she hates me, but I get so angry around her that sometimes I canât even form words.â I gulped, eyebrows slightly furrowing as Yunhoâs fingers twitched next to my thigh, âI wasnât feeling well all day, but then she started speaking and I justâshe brought the asylum up and I was back there again, being terrorised and touchedâI canât talk about it, Iâm sorry, Yunho.â
âLetâs not talk about it, then.â Yunhoâs jaw was clenched as he licked his lips, his forehead creasing as he leaned slightly forward.
âI donât remember anything after that, even her words are muddy.â I felt helpless as my eyes bore into Yunhoâs understanding ones, âMatilda was there the whole time, you can ask her what happened, Iâm sure sheâll tell you everything. She hates Karina as much as I do, she wouldnât lie for her.â
âIâll keep that in mind, Y/N.â Yunho nodded once, then tilted his head to the side. I gulped, feeling nervous for no reason, âDo you think youâll be able to sleep tonight? Are you feeling tired?â
I hummed, playing around with my fingers as I looked down at my lap again. Yunhoâs fingers were tapping the blanket, his breaths audible but even, âI feel spent, and I know I will be able to sleep, but IâmâŠscared to fall asleep alone.â
âI understand, Iâll let Mrs Harold know. Perhaps she could keep you company.â
âYunho?â
âYes, Y/N?â
âCan you stay until I fall asleep?â
My voice was quiet as I glanced up at Yunho through my eyelashes, feeling my cheeks heat up. He looked taken aback, then something I couldnât recognise crossed his features for a split second. He exhaled through his mouth and gulped, loudly. He hummed, deep in his chest, and flattened his palm against the blanket as he shuffled his feet around until his muddy boots hit the ground. I realigned my pillows and crawled a little further away on my bed, to make more space for Yunho as he made himself comfortable, still on the edge of it.
âBut I cannot stay once you are sleeping, Iâm sorry.â
âI know, itâs alright, Yunho.â
Our smiles were small but appreciative. Yunho nodded and chewed on his bottom lip, his eyes raking over my face as I watched his cheeks flush a deep shade of red. It wasnât warm in my room, but I suppose the sheets could make him feel warm too. His hand balled into a fist, grabbing a tight hold of the blanket as I glanced down at it.
âSweet dreams, Y/N.â
âYou too, Yunho.â
Every waking moment he spent thinking of her. Even in his dreams, she appears as a vixen, tempting Yunho to do unforgivable things. He knows he cannot, heâs her doctor and sheâs a patient in desperate need of treatment. Yunho knows this, she isnât his first case. Heâs met people with manic episodes before, potential dissociative amnesia too, but something sets her apart from the rest. Yunho has never once in his life wanted to reach out and cradle one of his patients to his chest and tell them everything would be alright now that he was there. But when he saw her, so frail and generous, soft-spoken and kind, he couldnât help but feel anger whenever she told him of Karina. Yunho had a feeling she wasnât like that unprovoked, and the more he heard of Karina and her schemes against his patient, the more convinced he was that Karina had lied in the first place to get her into that asylum, far away from the safety of her home. Yunho knew what went down inside an asylum, heâs treated many mentally unstable patients before, straight inside those horror houses, and his blood boiled anytime he saw pain and terror strike upon her face whenever the asylum was mentioned. Yunho didnât want to know, truth be told, what had happened to her there because he was sure heâd march up to that asylum and strangle every man who had hurt her. He was a doctor, his ego and fame protected him from making a mistake, but when she had led him inside her bedroom, Yunho was close to throwing it all out the window, quite literally. Her unique scent of hydrangeas had been so potent inside her bedroom, and her sitting daintily on the cushions of her queen-sized bed had his thoughts going haywire. Yunho wanted to touch her, not just tell her that she was safe and sound with him, but show her too. He was wanting and wanting, and he wondered if her story would have a happy ending. Could he save her from the madness they plastered over her head? Or would he dig her a bigger hole once the committee hears his verdict of her mental state? But what Yunho most importantly needed to sort out with himself, was the question thatâs been mulling over in his head ever since she had uttered it. Would he be willing to become her caretaker? Just to keep her safe and away from Karina, of course, Yunho was a professional, above all. He told himself he didnât have second intentions with her, but the more days passed by spent in her company, he couldnât tell for sure anymore.
           Karina was right about one thing, the committee had given Doctor Jeong one more week to sort out everything. He was right, I couldnât beat around the bush anymore, besides, we had gotten close in my story to that faithful day. Doctor Jeong knew this, I knew it too. Because he was afraid of overwhelming me again too soon, he had given me two days of bed rest before heâd return to resume our sessions. The two days had gone by and I was nervously waiting for him in the foyer. After the storm passed, the heat returned even stronger. I didnât wish to stay in the house, it aggravated me anytime I glanced towards the stairs, Karinaâs injured body lying by the foot of it too clear in my mind. The doctorâs patent motorcar was louder today than other days as it rolled to the front of the house, where he was welcomed by Mr Allen, the gardener. He was an elderly man who had grown fond of Doctor Jeong like many others in the household. Myself included, which would explain why my heart was beating uncontrollably once again, sweat brimming my eyebrows.
âWill you be alright?â Leia asked as she shuffled past behind me, fresh bedsheets in her arms, âI donât think Matilda will survive one of your episodes.â
Leia had no mal-intentions, she was just honest down to a pulp. I chuckled, glancing at her as she had stopped in the doorway to the laundry room.
âI might not survive another episode, too.â Leiaâs eyes widened guiltily, but I continued to smile, âIf the doctor writes a good report about me, Iâll finally be out of your hair, Leia. Pray for it.â
âI donât believe in God, young miss.â
âDonât let Doctor Jeong know that.â
Speaking of the devil, his knuckles rasped against the sturdy front door as Leia grinned, disappearing inside the laundry room. I opened the door before the doctor could knock again, welcoming him with a bright smile on my face. He paused, looking taken aback.
âGood morning, Doctor Jeong.â I greeted him, stepping aside to let him walk inside.
âGood morning, Miss Harold, you seem to be doing fine.â He returned a small smile as he shrugged his blazer off, wearing another tunic but fancier this time. It was a deep green, paired with his brown trousers which made him look like he was a huntsman returning from a long hunt to his wife, jittery to have her in his arms. I gulped, feeling embarrassed by my thoughts when I realised, I had imagined myself as the wife Doctor Jeong would return home to. It was inappropriate, but the thought was intrusive and fast before I could stop it.
âThank you for letting me rest, it has helped.â I hummed, raising a hand when the doctor went to step out of his polished shoes, âDo you mind if we sit underneath the willow tree today?â
âNot at all,â The doctor beamed, taking me off guard, âI was just about to suggest it, you know we cannot postpone todayâs topic. Being in a place you love might bring comfort, I hope, at least.â
âYou are thoughtful,â I smiled, then led the way towards the tea room, the grand doors were pulled open, letting inside the fresh warm breeze. Mr Allen was in the doorway, trimming the bushes, but he made way for us when he spotted us. I offered him an appreciative smile as he raised his hand in a silent greeting, a straw of wheat between his teeth as he tipped his hat towards Doctor Jeong. The doctor bowed back to him politely before we made our way down the gravel path, headed towards the willow tree. The warmth today made me feel hot despite the thin summer dress I wore, its sleeves short with a sweetheart neckline. It was a sage green, a pretty contrast against my copper curls. Without needing to ask, Matilda has made a daisy crown to wrap around my bun. I felt pretty and safe covered in my favourite things, sitting underneath the willow tree as frogs ribbited down by the pond, bees buzzing by. The doctor got ready as he opened his satchel bag, taking his notebook and new pencil out. As we sat, I noticed our thighs brushing together, the doctorâs now musky cologne invading my senses. When he placed his notebook on his left thigh, twisting his upper body to face mine, the pages of it brushed against my own thigh too.
âIn our last session, you spoke about visiting your fatherâs grave with your mother. You made him a daisy crown since he loved the flowers just as much as you do, and then, when you returned home, your once lover was waiting for you in the foyer.â Doctor Jeongâs tone was gentle but impersonal, he was a professional after all, âYou stopped after you said you were fighting and it gotâŠviolent? You must elaborate on that, did nobody hear it? Did nobody help?â
I sighed, picking at the grass, âIt didnât get violent in the sense of a physical altercation, but our words were harsh and unforgiving. He called me many names that day, he broke my heart, Doctor Jeong. I know you are curious about what was said, and because it leads up to what happened between Karina and me, I shall tell you.â
The doctor was jotting down my words in his notebook, his hand flying over the page. His bottom lip was between his teeth as he pushed at his spectacles with his other hand. He hummed and briefly glanced at me when I remained quiet for too long. I had to brace myself, so, I took a deep breath and gazed at the doctor instead of at the house, finding my nerves calmer if I gazed at his beautiful face, and his chocolate brown eyes whenever he held eye contact.
âMatthew, the man I had once loved, was my fiancĂ©. He had asked for my hand while my father was still alive, our love story goes way back. Weâve grown up together due to our fatherâs being friends, and chancefully had fallen in love too. He was always sweet and loving, he respected me, and always heard me out. I suppose that is what attracted me to him most, I could see a glimpse of how my father treated my mother in him. But we had our ups and downs too, he was way too jealous and hated it when I spoke to other men, meanwhile, I had no problem if he had female friends. After my father diedâŠit was hard for me to come to terms with it, I was sad every day for a very long time. I didnât want to see anyone but my mother, not even Matthew. He knew I needed time, but he was getting impatient, he was bringing up marriage more often than not, but I wasnât ready yet. I had just lost my father and the thought of not walking down the aisle with him by my side just hurt too much.â I paused and licked my lips, pulling my knees up to my chest as I felt the doctor shift and lean even closer, âAnd then as my mother and I healed together, she found Mr Brooks. It took them a while to settle down, paperwork and whatnot got in the way as well as people talking nasty behind their backs, but when I found out Mr Brooks had a daughter too, I felt hopeful. I thought I would finally find a true friend, someone to share everything with. Karina was lovely at first, very kind and funny, I could easily consider her my sister even if we werenât related by blood. But then, one evening we went out to a pub where she finally met Matthew, and things justâŠchanged.â
Doctor Jeong hummed, still writing as I let my eyes take in his focused expression. His forehead was creased slightly as he chewed on his bottom lip, his neck flushed from the heat. I had also shifted more into his space subconsciously, and I had to refrain from tracing his brows before sinking my fingers into his smooth-looking hair, âYou see, it wasnât Matthew who had changed, but Karinaâs attitude towards me. She became snappy and rude, she didnât make it obvious, but I knew she was looking down on me. She barely talked to me now when my mother and her father werenât around, but she somehow always found time to ask about Matthew. At first, I thought nothing much of it, I figured she mightâve not liked him too much and was looking out for me in an obscure way, but then I found their letters. Mr Allen was bringing in the post and I told him I would sort them out, so when I saw Matthewâs letter, of course I had assumed it was for meâŠexcept, it hadnât been. It was addressed to Karina, and there were all sort of weird questions about me as if whatever Karina had said before had upset him.â
âHas Karina been sending him letters behind your back?â Doctor Jeong looked confused as he looked up at me, his round eyes narrowed and void of kindness. When the doctor was this serious, he looked almost frightening. But I knew he was kind and caring underneath that mask, so I didnât care. I hummed and nodded, absentmindedly picking at the scabs that had formed over my bruised knuckles.
âYes, and she was lying to him, saying very ugly things about me. Still to this day, I donât understand why she did all of that. Leia says sheâs blinded by jealousy and wants to be better than me, but unless Karina says it, I donât want to believe it. Anyways, I didnât confront Karina right away, I hurried over to Matthewâs house to talk to him.â I huffed sadly, looking at the doctor again, âHe was just about to mount his horse and leave for the city, but when he saw me, he knew we had to talk. It turns out, Karina has been lying about me for months now, saying I was seeing other men behind his back and somehow even made up some evidence of it. She had sent him handkerchiefs that had been my fatherâs, claiming they were of those I wasâsleeping with. She even told him I was badmouthing him and that I was only marrying him out of pity, and because my father had made me promise I would marry someone richer than my family. Butâit was all lies! I loved Matthew, I always have! I wanted to marry him and have a nice household, but Karina took it all away from me. What he said to meâŠit had hurt a lot, and it still does, so I wonât repeat his words, but he broke off our engagement and told me to never appear in front of his eyes. I had loved him, YunhoâŠâ
My throat clenched as I took a shuddering breath, eyes filled with tears. Yunho had stopped writing and looked at me with pain in his eyes, bottom lip between his teeth, âIâm sorry, you deserved better.â
I hummed with a sad chuckle and quickly wiped my eyes before the tears could fall. This was it, this is what Yunho had been desperately wanting to hear for a month now. I lowered my legs and looked at Yunho with a neutral expression, making his eyes widen minutely, âI know, but itâs okay. If God is watching like everyone claims him to be, Karina will be punished, and so will Matthew. I was a mess after that conversation with Matthew, and I cried all the way back home. My chest was clenching and my heart was thumping wildly, I thought that was what heartbreak felt like, and I still believe so. When I stumbled through our front door, Karina was justâŠthere. Waiting for me in the foyer with an amused smirk. She didnât even feign innocence as she asked what happened, she could clearly see Matthewâs crumbled letter in my hand. I wonât deny it, I said some very ugly things to her. I didnât even let her speak as I exploded on her, Iâm still surprised the house staff didnât try to stop me. I have said this in my report too, but I struck first, I slapped her and pushed her back when she started laughing. She was only doing it to make me even angrier, and it was working.â
My muscles tensed as I closed my eyes and took a deep breath, keeping it in my lungs as Yunhoâs jaw was clenched, his eyes focused on my face as I continued talking, âI needed space, so I backed away before I could do anything really hurtful. My head was thumping and my body was shaking, I felt like I was suffocating. Karina just continued laughing as I hurried to the stairs, wanting to lock myself in my room and cry myself to sleep. She was following after me, now cackling instead of laughing, and then she said somethingâsomething that Iâll never forget, âAll that courting and playing around each other just to never even fuck him? Donât worry, youâre not missing out on anything, sister, heâs not even good in bed.â I saw red when I heard her say that, my thoughts were a mess and I didnât even doubt the accuracy of her words. I just reacted, I know I slapped her again as I stopped on the stairs, but I couldnât say anything as I was close to sobbing, so I just ran up the rest of the stairs, but she was still following after me. She was saying something, and I was screaming at her to shut up, but she wouldnât. And IâI just really wanted her to shut up, to not look at me with those eyes and I justâI donât know, Doctor, I donât know. My whole body was shaking and I couldnât see clearly, my head was aching and I couldnât even hear anymore, I justâI just remember suddenly coming to myself again when there was a shrill screech. And then I remember Matilda looking at me with terror in her eyes as she called for Jesper and Mr Allen to come help, to call for a doctor.â
âIn your report, you saidââ
âI know what I said, Yunho, I said I turned around and gave her a backhanded slap, yanked on her hair and bashed her head against the wall before pushing her down the stairs.â Yunhoâs eyes were shaking as our faces were close, âBut I donât remember doing any of those, the lawyer told me to say that to protect myself from a serious accusation. Matilda lied for me, and so did Mr Allen. In the end, Mr Brooks paid the judge and I was simply classified as insane, the case was swept under the rug and Iâve been forced to live like this ever since.â
âI knew there was something wrong with that report,â Yunho muttered under his breath, âBut why did you lie?â
âI was young and scared,â I sighed, my eyes searching Yunhoâs face for any judgment, but it wasnât there, âI thought they would lock me up if I didnât make up a story. But in the end, I was locked up in my own house for six years, a prison still, just different. I fainted in the court too, I donât remember much from there either.â
Yunho looked troubled as his eyebrows were deeply furrowed, his bottom lip thoroughly chewed on, and his spectacles pushed up on his nose. With his free hand, he reached forward, but stopped just before his fingertips could touch my hand and instead balled it up into a fist and lowered it back into his lap. His jaw clenched as he gulped, shaking his head as he looked down at his notebook.
âI have a scar on my abdomen,â I whispered, hand pressing against my covered stomach, âfrom having fallen over and cutting myself, do you believe me, Doctor?â
When Yunhoâs jaw just clenched and he didnât look at me, I gulped nervously and reached towards my sleeves to pull them off, to let the dress pool at my waist, but one fleeting glance at me had Yunho reaching forward with a panic-ridden face, his eyes widening, âStop, what are you doing? I believe you, Y/N, I do.â
His hands were big and warm, wrapped completely around mine as the sleeve of my dress swiftly slipped off my left shoulder. His thumb rubbed my bruised knuckles, and despite the sting, I welcomed the affectionate gesture as it covered my arms in goosebumps. I released a long breath, my eyes boring into Yunhoâs. His eyes were easy to read, he looked conflicted and confused. I had no idea if he believed me, but I wanted him to. Hurting Karina was wrong, but she deserved it, and I was glad I managed to make her hurt at least once compared to how many times she had hurt me. But I remained silent as Yunho leaned even closer, our faces a breath away from each other. He gulped, loudly, then frowned. As I opened my mouth, he looked alarmed and scrambled backwards, letting my hands drop into my lap as he gasped, grabbing for his things frantically. I didnât understand what was happening, but when I tried to help, he just pushed my hand away. My heart hammered in my chest nervously as sweat rolled down my temples, and I stood so quickly I got whiplash. Doctor Jeong was just about to take off towards the house when a desperate question left my lips.
âWill you save me, Doctor Jeong?â My voice was trembling just as much as Yunhoâs hands, âWill you become my caretaker and take me away with you, will you?â
My questions went unanswered as Yunho ran off, not even bothering to go inside the house as he followed the cobbled path to the front of the house. The engine of his motorcar was loud as I slumped back against the tree with a dizzy head.
            The committee was more eager than I had thought at first to wrap this whole thing up. Just two days after my last encounter with the doctor, a letter came at an early morning hour that the verdict would be given today. I was nervous, but I braced myself for the worst possible ending, which would be me being sent back to the asylum. I doubted I would survive that once again, so I could only hope the doctor had taken pity on me and would be generous in his report. My mother had been buzzing around the house all morning, making sure everything was perfect for the arrival of the committee. Cookies had been baked, fresh tea was brewed, the ground floor aired out with every corner dusted off, and the tea room was decorated with vases of freshly picked flowers. The grand doors were opened, creating a serene surrounding as I sat on the sofa by myself. Nobody was inside the room except for me, something which was rare. I gaze forward, at the visage, trying to commit it to memory. I wondered if I would get to see it tomorrow too.
Matilda had dressed me in a dainty white dress to feign innocence, with my hair pulled in a low bun, and daisies hanging out of it. It felt as if the ghost of my father was here to cheer me on, to offer me some braveness before everything would unfold. And it would, way too soon. There were loud knocks against the front door before it was opened, and six people piled inside our foyer. My mother and Karina quickly walked inside the room with my mother sitting next to me, meanwhile, Karina took her spot in her favourite armchair. The image was eerily similar to the first day the doctor had arrived, it made my heart race. The rest of my future was in the hands of another man, and I couldnât do anything about it. I knew what I had done to Karina was wrong, but a small part of me knew that she had deserved it. My muscles tensed when Mr Brooksâ voice carried inside the tea room as he led the committee and Doctor Jeong inside. My jaw clenched and my hands balled into fists as they each walked in, eyes on me as I remained unmoving.
The committee consisted of the town mayor, the judge who had handled my case, the townâs richest married couple, and Father Louis, the head of our church. My stomach churned as the familiar faces sat down surrounding me, leaving space for Doctor Jeong at the front. Mr Brook sat next to my mother and held her hand, making my mother sigh loudly. I didnât want to look at anyone, I was afraid to see what they hid in their eyes. The doctor seemed tense as he rolled his shoulders a few times, then cleared his throat and accepted the tea from Mrs Humphrey, who had insisted on staying in the room, in the back where she didnât bother anyone. I couldnât focus on anyone else but the doctor as he finally seemed like he was ready to speak up. He faced the room and his eyes took in everyone, staying on me for a second too long. I could see Karina sneer from my peripheral vision, but I didnât care. I was just as curious to hear what Doctor Jeong had to say as the committee.
âDear committee, Mr and Miss Brooks, Mrs and Miss Harold, and of course, Mrs Humphrey,â Doctor Jeong bowed his head lightly, âThank you for coming, and Iâd like to thank the committee for entrusting me with this intricate and peculiar case. I must say before I begin, that I have encountered cases like Miss Haroldâs before, but neither one has been as complex as hers. I trust my personal judgement and everything I have learned up until this point, that my verdict is the right choice, and that if the committee sees it fit as well, it shall proceed with Miss Haroldâs sentence accordingly.â
Doctor Jeongâs fingers were wrung together in front of him, his dark blue suit was perfect. He looked dashingly handsome with his wavy hair falling all over his forehead and into his eyes, his spectacles perched into the pocket of his vest. His warm eyes found mine for a second before he looked around the room again, nodding to himself. He took a deep breath and continued his speech, starting to pace around the front of the room. Him standing in front of the garden and the path that led to the willow tree was dreamy, âWe all know that Miss Harold had lost her father when she was young, which would be hard news to swallow for a person at any age. I assume that his early death left Miss Harold traumatised in a way that could go unnoticed unless looked upon by a professional, which didnât happen. Her stress and repressed pain had accumulated, waiting for a small spark to ignite the explosion, which did happen as we all know it. I spent a month daily by Miss Haroldâs side, listening to stories of her childhood, and her adulthood, all leading up to the moment weâve all been curious about. During my time studying her, Iâve come to observe that she is a very kind soul, attentive, and a generous person. She is soft-spoken and very sensitive to everything that happens around her, it is rather hard for me to imagine she could even as much as hurt a fly.â
I gulped, feeling my heart hammer in my chest as Yunho spoke with much conviction, his eyebrows furrowed as he stopped moving around, his eyes settling on Father Louis, âHer mental state, however, fluctuates a lot based on her surroundings, she easily reacts to the change of weather and the change of mood of a person. People like Miss Harold arenât only in touch with their peers, but with nature as well, as insane as that might sound, itâs a rather special attribute to have. Sheâs had bad days during our sessions, and I had the chance to further observe the cause of this. As a psychiatrist, I do not enjoy lightly throwing out diagnoses, but I have to ensure the health of my patients. Miss Harold suffers from manic episodes that get triggered by certain words, environmental changes, and people. In Miss Haroldâs stories, I have found one person who seemed to be always around her when these episodes happened, making me confident in my theory that she is Miss Haroldâs trigger.â
The people in the room gasped as they looked around. My heart was hammering, I could feel my pulse in my throat, but I couldnât help but let out an amused huff. Karinaâs eyes were wide and her knuckles white as she gripped the armrest of the armchair, fear painting her face. It felt satisfying looking at her, and if I hadnât known the doctor better, I wouldâve missed the satisfied smirk on his lips there for a millisecond, âIf this wasnât about the health of Miss Harold, I wouldnât be throwing out names so unabashedly, but this is to ensure her safety and health. Miss Brooks seems to like to pick on Miss Harold whenever she gets the chance, and she likes provoking her sister. Before anyone could deny my claim, I was witness to such a thing happening, Miss Brooks herself has said some very rude things about Miss Harold that no lady should utter, less about their sister, even if not related by blood. That being said, I cannot throw all the blame on Miss Brooks since Miss Harold is traumatised and doesnât know how to handle it, or how to control her outbursts.â
Then, as if there was nobody else in the room with us, Doctor Jeongâs eyes found mine, his expression softening. Karina had started crying next to me, but I couldnât care less as my mother was glaring at her, the committee didnât look very pleased either.
âWhat she said in her reportâŠâ Doctor Jeong loosened his necktie a little, licking his lips, âTurns out to be true. In a fit of rage, she disassociated and acted upon instinct. I do not know if she had told anyone, but Miss Brooks had come between Miss Harold and her fiancĂ©, breaking off their marriage. As someone who had been in love once, much like all of you in this room, Iâd like to assume, we all know what it means to experience our first heartbreak. For someone who had grown up with this boy, loved him with their whole heart, and was supposed to grow old with them, to hear their engagement was broken off based on some lies made up by Miss Brooks not too soon after Miss Haroldâs has lost her father mustâve been devastating. Thus, the trauma she had experienced before due to her fatherâs untimely death combined with another tragedy has made Miss Haroldâs mind break, lose its bearings, making her unable to tell right from wrong.â
I couldnât breathe as my eyes bore into Yunhoâs, filling with tears. I had expected him to go against me for having lied in my report, or to try and go around the topic without bringing it up much, but no, he was actively lying for me and keeping up the image that I had a lapse of judgement all this time. My motherâs hand found mine as she squeezed it reassuringly, tears streaming down her cheeks. I glanced at her fleetingly, my body buzzing with life as my hands trembled. I wanted to see the faces of the committee members, but Yunho was all I could look at. There was a heavy sigh in the room, it couldâve come from Mr Brooks or someone else, I couldnât tell.
âIâm very close to giving my verdict, so allow me to say this before that,â Yunho smiled softly, looking towards the committee with a gentle look on his face, but with a steely look in his eyes, âMiss Haroldâs is a human like all of us in this room, and she is allowed to make mistakes. Sheâs been punished for her mistakes, probably unfairly, and we mustnât make the same mistake again. I have concluded, that Miss Harold needs an environmental change for her to fully heal. This house no longer feels homey to her, she feels caged in and watched all the time, plus now you all know that Miss Brooks wonât leave her alone either. As a verdict, I have concluded that if the committee and her mother agree, Miss Harold could be assigned a new caretaker. AndâŠbefore you make suggestions as to who could fit this role best, I would like you all to consider me as her new caretaker for the next year. I am a doctor, I know what to do and how to act in case she is having another episode. I will be leaving the country in a month to return to France, where my foster father has requested my presence. The environmental change would benefit Miss Harold greatly, that is, if you trust me, of course.â
I felt close to fainting by the time Yunho had stopped talking. Him, Doctor Jeong Yunho, my new caretaker? Could that be possible? Would the committee even let it happen? I had no idea, but I wanted to fall in his arms and sob as I thanked him for his effort, for listening to me, for trying to save me from this place. The committee erupted in whispered mutters amongst themselves, but Father Louis seemed more than pleased with Yunho. His brows were sweaty as he dabbed at them with the back of his wrist, his arms covered with the sleeves despite the heat. My mother wasnât moving next to me, and Mr Brooks had turned his body away from Karina, who was trying to catch her fatherâs gaze insistently. Then, there was a tsk as the judge rose to his feet, all eyes falling on him.
âThank you. Doctor Jeong, for your in-depth analysis and for the tabs and reports youâve been keeping on Miss Harold this month, we appreciate it.â He rubbed at his chin, his hair already silver from age, âWe have selected you, Doctor, to treat this delicate case because we have heard of your expertise. You have never once failed to treat your patients accordingly, and I find no reason to doubt your verdict, however, wouldnât it be risky to take Miss Harold away from here? Couldnât that trigger her madness even more? And if Mrs Harold wonât agree, she cannot go. Either way, we cannot let her go unless you promise to report back to us monthly, Doctor Jeong, and once the one year is up, you must return her home. She shall be reevaluated, then her fate will be decided for the future.â
When Yunho and my eyes met again, I knew my fate had been sealed. France, a new beginning by his side, sounded like a far-fetched dream that was now within my reach.
Yunho was a professional, except when it came to her. The lines had blurred long ago, he couldnât tell who was the doctor and who was the patient when it came to her. All Yunho knew was that he could never let her go, not when she clung to him as if her life depended on him. Her lips tasted like honey and her moans were the prettiest music he had ever had the chance to hear, her skin soft and warm and her body so pliant underneath his. All it took was one touch from her for his whole being to crumble, he felt drunk on her, insatiable. Yunho knew he couldnât let her return home, not now that heâd found Mingi too, not when the three of them were living in a tucked away village in a homey cottage, away from prying eyes. Yunho finally had what heâd been yearning for his whole life. His family was back, right within his reach, and even when he missed his home, heâd gaze upon Mingi and her, and realise that his home was here with them. And she was sweet like nectar, Yunhoâs guilty pleasure that he just couldnât get rid ofâdidnât want to get rid of. He was a bad man for preying upon the innocent and unassuming ones, but may God forgive him for his sins, he was just a man after all. He knew he was bound to become insane like his patients one day, but Yunho was already a madman for her, and he didnât care. Profession be damned, only the four walls of their cottage would truly know the truth, much like her amnesiac brain that had no desire to return to a land and home thatâs treated her so horribly once. Here, Yunho was a complete man and he had wowed to protect what was hisâŠno matter what it took. Mingi and her were staying there with him, forever.
ê€Â Masterlist ê€Â
âłPerm. taglist: @orshii @jjoongstar @tinyelfperson @thestarskiller @zuuhaa
@aaa-sia @gong-fourz @a-tinycarat @sooberryworld @hopefulrascalstatesmantoad
@anastasiamin860 @yunhogrippers @vcutparis @tunaasan @blvckarabixnvoid
@yusalterego @arigakittyo @slowee00 @jaerisdiction @hey-syia
@vnessalau @oddracha @chatsgotmytongue @potatos-on-clouds @yunhowooyo
@watermelon2319 @yoongzsmile28 @klllerwaifu @apriecotte @hwasbbyg
@kyeos4ng @samiiy20 @woosanhobros @aswho1estuff @khjoongie98
@ateez-main-yapper @kang-ulzzang @felixs-voice-makes-me-wanna @ginger-mingi @redzie02
@unholywriters @autieofthevalley @roomsofangel @peachyy-joonie @baeksofty
@tunafishyfishylike @syubseokie @jycas @fandom-freak-geek @intaksfav
@itswaffleberry @e3ellie @skz1-4-3 @hoe4yunho @kyeomooniee
@winklehwa @eyesonlyformingi @khjssss @torieisawesome99 @amrose8
@faeriehwa @hongjoongsprincess @iceteainsummer @lac3ybow @aurorajoye
@londonbridges01 @hyukssunflower @hwashua-luv @halloweenbyphoebebridgers
â complete the forms if you're interested! ^^
#bvidzsoo#cromernet#yunho x reader#jeong yunho x reader#yunho angst#jeong yunho angst#yunho smut#jeong yunho smut#yunho fluff#jeong yunho fluff#jeong yunho#yunho ateez#yunho oneshot#jeong yunho oneshot#ateez smut#ateez angst#ateez fluff#ateez fanfic#ateez oneshot#ateez x reader#ateez scenarios#ateez imagines#yunho fanfic#kim hongjoong#park seonghwa#kang yeosang#choi san#song mingi#jung wooyoung#choi jongho
829 notes
·
View notes
Text
The Princess
Pairing: Mafia! Husbands! Poly! Ateez x Fem! Wife! Reader
Genre: Angst, a good chunck of fluff, a HINT of smut (no actual sex scenes of the sorts but theyâre quite sexual towards each other)
Synopsis: If ATZ were asked what their prized possession is, they wouldnât say what you think. It isnât the money, the cars, the jewels, the priceless paintings or anything of the sorts. As cheesy and unexpected as it sounds, they would answer each other. Now while on surface that is true, the reality of it is their most prized possession, their true treasure, the one they donât even dare let people know they have in true fear of it getting taken away, is you. Their Princess. So what would happen when one night, you donât come home?
Warnings: Kidnapping, major violence, implied sexual activity, death/murder (not of the major characters), alcohol consumption, Arson, MxM of course. So because of all of this please â ïžMNDIâ ïž if I missed anything please let me know!
Word count: 5.3k words
A/N: Itâs finally here!!! My goodness you guys loved that teaser đ Iâm so grateful for all your enthusiasm! I hope this fic lives up to your expectations!! Happy reading!! Please tell me what you think! Likes, replies and reblogs are so appreciated!
.â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸâ§.
On one side of the outskirts of town, there is this mansion belonging to a very interesting group of people. As of this moment throughout the gargantuan mansion, the sounds of fast paced footsteps can be heard. While loud or fast paced footsteps like these werenât necessarily uncommon.
However somehow everyone who heard them deep down knew, something was wrong.
Suddenly said footsteps came to a stop as the sound of the door to the meeting room was opened.
Then the dreaded question was asked.
âMy loves, have any of you seen or heard from Princess?â
Silence.
Just like that it became nothing but silence as all discussions of work seems to halt after hearing Yeosangs question.
âIs.. she not home yet?â Seonghwa asked softly.
âWell.. I canât find her anywhere and sheâs not answering her phoneâŠâ
âWhat?!â Wooyoung exclaimed as he quickly pulled out his phone and called her number.
Yunho took a glance to the clock on the wall and saw how late it was.
âItâs past her curfew. She knows sheâs supposed to be home by now.â
âForget that! She knows to always answer us. And sheâs literally not answering us!â Wooyoung groans after the call goes unanswered.
âSheâs just supposed to go shopping again!â Jongho exclaims.
The rest of the men in the room were silent. Frozen in fear and contemplation of what happened to you and where could you possibly be.
Suddenly they hear the front door open.
Believing its you, they wasted no time and quickly rushed down. However what they find are only your body guards, bloodied and bruised.
You?
Nowhere in sight.
At the sight of their bosses, your guards quickly got on their hands and knees. A position that screams begging for forgiveness.
âS-sirs! Weâre sorry! So terribly sorry!! One second we were watching over her then the next we go-â
BANG
Hongjoong had no need for useless explanations or excuses.
His Princess was taken.
All he needs now is her back.
Mingi takes the gun from Hongjoongs hand and steps forward.
He kneels in front of one of the other guards and grabs him by the hair, positioning the gun under his chin.
âWhere?â
âD-downtown! The alley near her favorite Chanel store!â
BANG
Jongho then takes the gun and aims it at the last guard.
âSIR! Please no forgive me!! I will find her! I will-â
BANG
Protecting you and making sure you come home safe was these guards only job. And yet they have failed.
Now theyâve lost you and to them there is no greater sin.
As Yunho is cleaning the blood off of Mingiâs face, Seonghwa turns to the maids and the henchmen stationed in the room. Clearly terrified as theyâve never seen their bosses so angry.
âClean this up. We want this place spotless. Not a single trace of these sinners left behind. And get everyone to work. Find her. Check every corner. Turn every stone. Use any informant we have. Use any methods you can think of. Do what you must! And Find. Her. Now.â
With that they scrambled and quickly got to work.
Your husbands then left the room. Rage and determination emanating from their very being.
They will find you.
And those that took you will pay.
.â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸâ§.
At another mansion on the other side of town, much smaller than the one he calls home, San is residing. He's currently on an undercover mission to get information they need to get rid of this nuisance of a mafia.
This other group wasnât really a threat. No one was. However theyâve been getting on their nerves for far too long. So they intended to just wipe them out for their own comfort. Silently, quickly and deadly. Like they always do. Furthermore itâll maybe also send a message to other groups to not pull the same stunts.
So once they got wind of how the head of the mafia likes collecting and having âtoys' around no matter the gender they knew one of them had to play the part.
After careful consideration and discussion they agreed upon San.
No one was entirely happy with the idea. They hated the thought that San had to flaunt what was theirs and let another man touch him, possibly even kiss him.
However they knew their options to make this quick were very limited.
They all drew the line that San cannot sleep with him though. Not like San ever wanted to anyway. He would rather die before betraying his loves like that.
Thankfully San knew how to play his part well, where he was fun enough to keep around even if he had yet to sleep with the man. Plus he's too pretty of an eye candy to be let go anyway.
However he still needed to get this information quick, cause he knew he couldn't play celibate forever. The man will eventually want to force him to sleep with him.
So he needed to get out of there before that happens.
Currently San is in the living room in nothing but a fur coat and his boxers, as how the man requests all his toys to dress, with said man and the rest of his toys.
He's just drinking his whiskey as the man plays, wishing he was back home.
When suddenly the door was slammed opened and a girl was thrown to the ground.
"Sir, we've retrieved what you've asked for!"
One of the henchmen announced loudly.
San acted uninterested and nonchalant as he usually does until he glanced at and unfortunately recognized the poor girl on the ground.
..Princess..?
Why were you here??
How were you here???
Youâre supposed to be safe at home with the rest!
âAh yes. So this is ATZâs precious treasure.â The man said with a shit eating grin causing the diamonds in his teeth to shine in the light.
He then got up and made his way to kneel in front of you. The man then grabbed your chin to make you look at him.
San almost lost it.
How dare his filthy hands touch his Princess?! So roughly at that.
âI have no idea what youâre talking about. Let go of me you piece of shit.â You growled at him.
âAh ah.. is this the way you talk to the only one that can spare yo- UGH! Fucking bitch!â
Before he even finished his sentence you spat straight into his face.
In retaliation he gave you a hard slap, knocking you down.
There your eyes met San.
While to an outsider San seemed unbothered, you knew your husband. He was beyond mad. So mad that the devil himself wouldnât dream of messing with him.
You, of course, knew of his mission. So you understood why he had to just sit there and act like he didnât know you.
You werenât even upset.
You missed him too much. It was such a sight to see him again.
Especially in the outfit heâs in.
So you only give him the tiniest comforting smile. Letting him know that youâre okay.
âLock her up. ATZ will come and find her soon. Theyâll make the deal to get her back. And soon Iâll be the most powerful.â
As you were being dragged away, your eyes only lingered on San.
San could only take another sip of his whiskey, with only one thought in his head.
Oh how wrong this man was.
.â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸâ§.
âWhat do you mean you have no leads?!?â Mingi barked at the henchmen who gave him the update. Or lack there of.
âIâm sorry sir.. weâre still look-â
CRACK
âWe donât need your useless apologies. Get out there and FIND OUR WIFE. NOW!â Mingi didnât even let him finish before hurling a heavy desk ornament straight towards his head and yelling at him again.
Bleeding from the head but grateful it wasnât from a bullet hole, the henchmen hurriedly staggered over to give Mingi, Yeosang, and Wooyoung each a kiss on their rings that dawn their middle finger. Once the obligatory task of showing respect was done he left the room to continue searching for the lady of the household.
The room fell silent again as Mingi walks over to the big portrait of his husbands and you right in the middle. Smiling so wide and beautifully. Heâd do anything to make sure that smile stays forever on your face and for him to always see it.
All of them would.
Youâve only been missing for less than 24 hours yet thatâs longer than any of you have been apart these past few years without reason. Along with the fact that they knew you were taken forcibly, unease would be an understatement to describe what Mingi and the rest of them are feeling.
Then after a sigh, Wooyoung reached over and rung a bell that was on the desk. Which caused a maid with a tray of glasses and Wooyoungâs favorite bottle of liquor to enter.
Wooyoung took the bottle, disregarding the glasses and took a swig.
âHave we heard back from San? He needs to come home now. I already hated that he had to do this. Now with Princess gone, I need to know that heâs safe too. And Iâm sure heâd also want to find her.â Wooyoung rambled, jittery due to the present status of his lovers are up in the air.
âWe just sent the message to him. Heâll respond soon.â Yeosang sighed, trying to reassure him by also softly grabbing his hand. However he also then poured himself some of the liquor and took a sip.
Suddenly a rushed knock on the door was heard.
âCome in!â Mingi yelled.
âSirs! A message from Sir San!â A different henchmen hurriedly walked in and dropped a small note on the table.
âGood. Now leave.â Wooyoung said.
The henchmen nodded, also kissing the rings on their fingers before leaving.
Yeosang then took the note. It was only two words but it caused him to jump up from his seat. He bellowed for whoever was nearby to come in.
âGet Captain! We need to leave now!!â He ordered firmly.
âWhat?! What did he say?!â Wooyoung asked also jumping up.
âCausing Mingi to also step forward curiously.
Yeosang merely had to show them the note for them to understand.
âSheâs here.â
.â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸâ§.
Locked away in a small and quite frankly ugly room is currently where you are. Truth be told?
Youâre just bored.
You wanted to go home.
Thats all.
You knew the second you were taken your husbands will bring upon hell on earth. So youâre just waiting for that to happen.
Youâre not sure how they were able to figure out you were their wife in the first place though. Someone on your staff mustâve snitched. Well you can deal with them later.
Right now they just need to hurry and pick you up.
Ugh you bought such a pretty new dress to show off to themâŠ
Itâs probably ruined in that dingy disgusting alley by now.
Shame.
A loud thud can suddenly be heard outside of your locked door and it caused your heart to race. Soon the door unlocked to reveal the beauty that is Choi San.
âSannie!!â You chirped excitedly.
You leaped from the bed only to be pulled back.
âUgh! Stupid handcuff.â You grumbled. Completely forgetting it was there.
âOh Princess!!â San said as he made his way to you in a flash, quickly uncuffing you. With a key youâre not so sure where he got it from. A knocked out guard possibly. No matter though.
As now with your arms free you can finally engulf your husband in a big hug once again.
âOh my sweet darling! What happened?? How are you here???â He asked as he pulled away and checked every inch of you to see where you were hurt.
âIâm not sure my Sannie. One minute I was walking to the car then the next thing I knew these big oafs grabbed me and dragged me here. Iâm fine though love! I promise! Minor bruises and scratches is all..â You explained and try to reassure him.
You knew it was in vain though as even a microscopic scratch on you will cause any of your husbands to go on a rampage.
The fact your old butler is now six feet under for giving you a small cut is proof enough.
âPrincess.. youâre clearly hurtâŠâ San said with a sigh. âWeâre so sorry.. This shouldâve never happened.â He apologized softly stroking the bruise on your cheek.
âHush now my love. You know thereâs only one way I could ever possibly be considered hurt. And that is if anything were to ever happen to my precious husbands. Only then. Will I ever consider myself harmed.â Pure love and sincerity lacing your voice.
A voice San truly does miss. Itâs been weeks since heâs home. Oh how he misses it.
âWell itâs good to know the feeling is mutual darling. As seeing these bruises and scuffs on your precious skin brings me nothing but great agony and ignites a fire in me like no other.â He explained as he kisses each visible blemish and cut.
âDonât worry Princess. The others will be here very soon alright? Just sit tight. I need to get back to work to avenge you darling.â Once finished with his reassurance that your husbands are on their way, he finally gives you a kiss youâve been craving ever since he left the comforts of your home.
âOkay my love. Though do be quick. Iâm awfully bored. Oh and by the way..â You start as you softly trail your hand down his chiseled body. âYou should start dressing like this at home. Iâm sure the others would also very much enjoy it!â You giggle as your hand made it to his crotch. Cupping it.
Oh you missed the little twitch it does so much.
âAh yes, hmm your wish is forever my command Princess.â He replies with a chuckle. He then takes your hand and kisses the wedding band on your finger softly.
âI love you Princess. Iâll be back.â
âI love you too.â
.â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸâ§.
âAh yes. Mr. Jeong. Welcome to my humble abode! I see my offer finally has caught your eye.â
Yunho doesnât bother to reply before walking in.
âMy, how rude you are. But very well. Iâm sure youâre uneasy as.. something is missing.â The man then continues to taunt with a smirk.
Yunhoâs face remains stoic, however his fist clenches a bit tighter.
âI have no time for your games.â Yunho simply states before letting himself into the mans office. Yunho then sits down and tells the man to do the same. âState exactly what it is you want. Weâll talk from there.â
The man lets out a scoff before sitting down across from him.
He then claps his hand which causes a very familiar man to walk in to bring in a tray of drinks.
âThank you San.â The man says in a smirk, once again causing the diamonds in his mouth to shine.
San simply ignores him.
No longer seeing the need to act accordingly.
As San makes his way to leave, he gets stopped by a hand on his exposed abdomen.
âExcuse me. I donât believe Iâve given you permission to touch my lovely toys.â The man warns Yunho.
Who is simply admiring his husband.
âHmm⊠well, âyour toy.â Is quite the specimen I must say. Canât seem to help myself.â Yunho says with a smirk towards San, running his hand up and down his body.
Oh lord how much theyâve missed each otherâs touch.
With Sanâs back facing the man, he canât see the smirk that San reciprocates to Yunho. Yunho lets out a soft chuckle before taking Sanâs hand and kissing his ring finger. That was unfortunately currently empty.
âLeave San.â The man growls.
San does. But not before softly grazing his fingers across Yunhoâs broad shoulders.
âOdd.. he usually never lets anyone else touch himâŠâ the man mumbles to himself softly. Too stupid to realize whatâs going on.
âSo youâve stolen our Princess. Due to that you expect us to work with you. Is that it?â Yunho finally cuts to the chase.
âWell youâd do anything to get her back wouldnât you?â The man replies cockily.
âNaturally.â
âWell then work with me. Then Iâll set her free. Simple!â
CRASH
âYouâre a bigger idiot than we thought.â
Suddenly the sounds of bullets firing, screams and yells can be heard throughout the mansion.
The man, the coward he truly is, instinctively hides under the desk at all the noise. However that desks gets thrown off of him, revealing Yunho standing above him. Gun aimed straight to his forehead.
âRun.â
Without a second thought he books it out of the room. Only to be met with the bodies of his henchmen, maids and toys scattered about. Blood coating the walls and floors. He was frozen in shock. That is before a bullet goes flying near his head grazing his ear.
âAH!â
âI said. Run.â
The man once again runs, but also stupidly tries his luck and pulls out his own gun. Before he could even aim at Yunho, his gun was shot out of his hand.
âThe more you try to survive. The less likely itâll be the case. So when my husband tells you to run. You run.â Jongho simply states standing in the living room. Surrounded by dead bodies, shattered chandeliers, ruined paintings, and mangled musical instruments.
While he was devastated at the state of his fortune he was thankfully still smart enough to value his life more. So he began to rush again.
He thought that maybe he could take the shortcut that leads to his garage through his dining room. So thats where his running legs took him as bullets were still flying everywhere. So much so that he canât tell which came from his own men and which came from ATZ.
As he made it into the dining room he was only met with the sight of his most precious car on top of his dining table.
âOh? Were you planning on escaping with this? Hmm. That doesnât seem possible now does it?â Seonghwa taunts while sitting on the roof of the car.
âAll this over some girl?!?!â The man roars enraged of what has become of his hard work.
Seonghwaâs expression hardens in the blink of an eye. Without another word he stands and pulls out his gun then starts shooting at the man without mercy.
The man realizes his mistake too late and gets shot in the shoulder and grazed on the thigh. However the adrenaline pumping through his veins was still enough to have him dashing out of the room.
He no longer has a plan and getting slightly dazed from the blood heâs losing, heâs just trying to get out of there. He opens the nearest door to him hoping itâll lead to an exit.
Unfortunately for him, once again heâs met with a horrible sight and sound.
âAh! Youâve finally come to play!â Yeosang says with a smile laced with venom.
What the man has stumbled into is his indoor tennis courtroom. Where currently Yeosang and Yunho have gathered a bunch of his henchmen, somehow tied up their upper bodies, and made them into moving targets for their tennis practice.
Many of his henchmen had succumbed to their injuries and their blood has splattered and painted the walls, floor and ceiling.
Frozen in shock due to the gruesome display, Yunho took the opportunity to serve and strike a tennis ball straight to the mans face.
âWonderful shot my love!!â Yeosang cheers.
âYour turn handsome.â
Yeosang then wastes no time before doing the same and hitting the man right on the crotch.
âOops wasnât aiming for that but Iâll take it.â
âI would say you got a higher score than me.â Yunho chuckles.
This man still doesnât give up however.
Not like the boys wanted him too anyway. They always loved a challenge and this man hasnât even payed a fraction of his sins.
.â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸâ§.
After hearing the commotion thats happening outside your ugly holding room, you knew it only meant one thing.
Your lovely husbands are finally here to pick you up.
While the man that thought he could have his way by kidnapping you was being dealt with, the door to your room opened revealing your knights in shining armor.
Oh my! They look absolutely gorgeous in their suits.
If circumstances were any different you wouldâve happily have them take you right then and there.
âMy loves!!!â You screeched happily and skipped your way over to them.
âOh Princess!!!â Wooyoung exclaimed happily as he wrapped you up in his arms.
Seonghwa and Jongho doing the same.
âAre you hurt Princess??â Seonghwa asked worriedly. âOh my you are! Oh weâre so sorry darlingâŠâ Seonghwa didnât even let you answer.
âMy loves Iâm fine! I promise Iâm fine! I have you here, Iâm alright. Where are the others..?â You ask with a pout.
âOh theyâre dealing with pests right now Princess donât worry. It wonât take them too long.â Jongho says with a soft comforting smile.
âHmm alright.. are you three taking me home?â
âYes we are darling! Come no- goodness! what an ugly room they kept you in!! Our Princess doesnât deserve this?!â Wooyoung then exclaims when finally taking notice of the room. Genuinely upset that you were kept in such an ugly room.
âI know right?! Itâs so tacky!!â You say with an eyeroll. Seonghwa and Jongho can only chuckle at your antics.
The three of them then safely brought you outside. Where you were met with Hongjoong waiting patiently on the hood of the limousine.
Also looking immensely good. As in âplease fuck me right nowâ levels of good.
Alas.
Circumstances didnât allow it.
âJoongie!!!â You exclaim happily as you sprint to him.
Hongjoong quickly opens his arms for you. You jump into his arms as he picks you up and spins you around.
âOh our Princess.. we were so worried. Weâre so glad youâre okay!â Hongjoong sighs in relief.
âOf course Iâm okay! Youâre my husbands! Nothing will ever harm me!â You say with your gorgeous smile.
âYou were taken sweetie.. Weâre oh so sorryâŠâ
âOh enough with your apologies! Iâm fine! I promise Iâm fine! It seems like you guys constantly forget my vows! Now that hurts! You know Iâm only ever hurt when you guys are!â You remind them.
âWell the bruises on your sweet body may not hurt you but they do hurt us sweetie. So that makes it hurt you!â Wooyoung explains going off your logic.
âAlright smarty pants!â You huff.
âBesides! You all bruise me constantly! Do you not?â You tease.
âThose are different love.â Seonghwa says with a knowing glance and grin. Stepping closer to you.
âYou know that very well. Any bruising or scratches done to your skin that is caused by us is all because you wished for it. Done specifically for your pleasure.â Jongho says as he leans forward as well to kisses a certain spot under your jaw.
You quickly bit your lip to suppress the moan bubbling up your throat.
Once Jongho pulls away, and youâve calmed down, you look at all of them properly and smile.
âIn all seriousness Iâm fine my loves. I really am. Youâre here now. You saved me. Like I knew you would. What happened to me was not because of you. Someone betrayed us that Iâm sure of and we can deal with that later. Now can you all just take me home?â
âVery well our sweet.â Seonghwa says with a smile as he steps forward to kiss the crown of your head.
As you were about to enter the car you noticed Hongjoong still just standing there.
âMy love? Are you not coming with?â You ask.
âNot yet Princess. I need to watch over and there are things I must do. Go home with the others. Weâll be home soon.â He informs with a smile.
âHmm very well⊠Donât take too long though! Tell that to the others too! I miss my husbands!!â You grumble.
âAnd we miss you. No worries. Being away from you after everything that has happened aches me as much as you.â
âHmm alright. See you soon my beloved.â
With a final flying kiss goodbye, you enter the car with the rest. You all then drive off as Hongjoong turns around and looks at the mess he intends to finish.
Back in what was once a mansion, with the help of his henchmen that are still abled bodied and loyal to him. The man that caused all of this is executing a plan of escape.
They were finally able to sneak past all of the chaos that was still happening, to the last functioning escape car they know of.
Or so they thought.
Before they could even start the car. That wouldnât have worked anyway.
They noticed San standing in front of it.
With an expression none of them have ever seen.
âSan..?â The man questions as he thought San wouldâve been killed as well.
San without even thinking twice, pulls out his own gun and shoots the very last henchmen he had, dead.
Merely as second after their bodies slumped over, a fist slammed into the window of the mans side, cracking it.
âGet out.â
Laughed.
The man laughed.
Thats the only thing he can do in this situation.
Incredibly bloodied, bruised and broken.
With everything he had worked for.
Gone. In less than a 12 hours.
All because he thought he could kidnap you and get away with it.
He then finally got out and stood in front of Mingi.
Where Mingi happily grabbed him by the back of the collar and dragged him to the front of the mansion. Here he threw him down in front of the feet of his lovers that had stayed behind. Their sea of henchmen standing behind them.
Before Hongjoong even acknowledged him, he turned to San. Admiring his body that he missed as much as the others but then clicks his tongue. He grabbed the fur coat San was still wearing then asked.
âHe gave you this?â
San simply nodded.
Scoffing he tugs on it more, silently telling San to take it off as he takes his own off.
âNo husband of mine will wear such a cheap and ugly fur coat like this any longer.â He complains as he puts his coat on San.
Thankfully he wore the big sized one today. It fits San perfectly.
âH-husband..?â
âYes. Husband.â Hongjoong replies still admiring San but now also running his hand up and down his body.
Now these are the touches Sanâs been craving for all these weeks.
âOh which reminds me!â Yeosang exclaims before pulling out a familiar gold band.
Seeing this causes a huge smile to appear on Sanâs face and his eyes to light up.
As he did many years ago, Yeosang took Sanâs hand and slipped his wedding ring back right where it belongs. Kissing it to seal the deal.
âHmm. Much better. Oh also! You should start dressing like this at home.â The smirk never leaving Hongjoong as he says it.
âI agree.â Mingi states.
The other lovers humming in agreement.
San could only chuckle.
âPrincess said the same thing.â
âWell we must make it happen then.â Yunho said with a wide cheeky smile.
âWhat the fuck is going on?!â
Oh they forgot he was there-
âYou really did mess with the wrong people you stupid man.â Yeosang sighs bored of the man already.
âI have a name?!â
âWe clearly donât care. And it clearly wonât matter anymore.â Mingi says with an eyeroll as he flicks open a lighter.
âSo this is it? Youâre gonna set me on fire?â
âYes.â San says.
The mans eyes shot wide. Somehow not expecting the blunt answer.
âNot before you watch everything you have burn of course.â Hongjoong says as Mingi throws the lighter behind the man.
The lighter then lands in a trail of gasoline that leads to mangled furniture and fortunes that are strewn about, before leading to the actual mansion.
It doesnât take long until everything goes up in flames.
The man watches in agony as everything. Everything. Burns. He then turns to the men and curses.
âYouâve taken everything.. literally everything. Must you really kill me too?â The man asks somehow still trying to make it out of this alive.
âI wonât bother you again⊠Iâll just vanish. Live a quiet life please. You wonât gain anything from killing me. You got her back!!!â He bargains.
SMACK
âDonât even think about mentioning her again. No. Donât even think about her. Your mind is not worthy to have her in it.â Hongjoong says after slapping him straight across the face.
âYouâre right though. We wonât gain anything from your death. We wonât even gain satisfaction.â Yunho starts.
âHowever. Weâre merely just punishing sinners.â Yeosang continues.
âBefore you even bother. No. You havenât suffered enough. Not even close. But we couldâve done much more. So consider yourself lucky. As of now at least. As weâre sure in hell youâll suffer even more for what youâve done.â Mingi adds with a gleaming smirk.
âYou took our Princess. Your greatest sin and stupidest mistake. So for that. You must pay the price.â San explains further.
âTo put it simply. You gotta die.â Hongjoong finishes as he steps forward and grabs the mans collar.
ââCause you being alive is still a sin in itself. Why? Well... youâre still breathing her air.â
And with that, Hongjoong merely gives him one last shove. Making the man fall back into the flames.
His screams of suffering can be heard for miles. However due to his extensive injuries it didnât take long for said screams to just stop. Leaving nothing but the melody of crackling fire in the air.
Once that happened, Hongjoong lazily chucked in Sanâs old fur coat into the flames as well. Coincidentally the coat landed perfectly on the mans, now charred, body. This action actually made Yunho chuckle.
âOh. Like he needed that. Iâm sure heâs toasty enough.â Yunho commented sarcastically.
In turn causing everyone else to also let out a laugh.
âWell. Thought he might want to descend to hell wearing what he thinks is fashion.â Hongjoong reasons with a shrug.
.â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸâ§.
As the fire burned on ATZ and their henchmen just watched. Making sure everything gets burned to the ground. Took a while but it was beautiful in a way so they didnât mind.
Once the fire started dying down the sound of a car approaching was heard.
Odd.
They were supposed to wait at home.
The car came to a halt and then the rest of ATZ exited. As they walked up to ones who were watching, the henchmen parted straight down the middle to make way before returning to position.
The rest that just arrived now stand next to the others as they also tuned in to watch the fire.
âWerenât you all supposed to wait at home and keep Princess company?â Yeosang asked.
âWell we were. But we all missed you too much. And you know Princess loves watching the show. Plus.. she was getting needy for all of us.â Seonghwa explains with a subtle smile.
âAaah I see. Oh! But she shouldnât be breathing this much smoke though!â San says worriedly.
âRelax. We made her wait in the car. She can still view it well but she wonât be in harms way.â Jongho reassures before handing San a pair of pants.
âGood. Oh? Whatâs this? Youâre not enjoying seeing me like this like the others are Jongie?â San teases.
Jongho simply rolls his eyes and ignores him. Biting the inside of his cheek hoping no one notices his flushed cheeks. Also trying to not look down at Sanâs bulge.
âI think he just doesnât want to be distracted. This is the first time weâve seen you in weeks Sannie. We missed you very much. You and your sexy body.â Mingi says as he nudges Jonghoâs shoulder.
Jongho just softly nudges Mingi back.
âJust say you miss my cock.â
âWe all do.â Wooyoung chirped in with a smack to Sanâs ass.
A couple of hours past before the fire finally dies down and the smoke begins to clear.
Their work here is finally done.
And just ust like that the car door then opens.
Then out walks you, their Princess, wearing one of your newest most lavish and expensive dress in your favorite color. Youâre also all dolled up just for them.
At the sight of you exiting the car, the sea of henchmen that were still standing behind your husbands, quickly part to make way like before. However this time, they also got down on their knees, head down, in respect.
As they should.
âWhat a beautiful sight! Oh my loves you outdid yourselves with this one!â You praise them giddy as if you werenât talking about the scene of a gruesome massacre.
âAn appropriate punishment for such a sinner donât you think Princess?â Hongjoong asks as he takes your hand.
âI suppose.â You hum as you stand beside him.
âNow that youâre done, can we please leave? Iâm hungry!â
âAh! One more thing before we leave!â Hongjoong announces as he walks towards the ashes.
In said ashes, there lies the skeleton of the man that started all of this. With a wide smirk on his face, Hongjoong carefully crouches down and picks up a small but very sparkly diamond from the teeth of said skeleton.
Hongjoong, smirk not faltering even a bit, makes his way back to you and takes your hand.
âWhat do you think princess? Shall we customize you a new ring?â He asks showing the diamond.
âOh my! Yes please! Oh! And check for any more jewels that are left behind in these ashes and rubble! We shouldnât let such pretty things go to waste.â
âOf course darling.â Jongho starts before turning his attention to the men that were still on their knees before you.
âYou heard her.â
âYES SIR!â
Like that they all got up, bowed to you once more before rushing to the ashes where a lavish mansion once stood. In search of anything shiny that might please you.
âHmmm can we pleeeasee eat now?â You ask with a pout.
âYes we can our Princess. Yes we can.â Seonghwa tells you with a smile as they all lead you back to the car.
âCan we go to my favorite place tonight?â
âAnything for our Princess.â
.â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸ: â§ïœ„ïŸâ§.
Bonus ending! âĄ
© mimikittysblog 2024
Tagging: @faeprincess777 @starygw3n @bee-gremlin @pinkpearlstar @sweetinsaniiity @puppyminnnie @borahae-reads @spenceatiny18 @justconniez @rosydipity @vtyb23 @beccaskz @boredlol914 @ntlmundy @latisthegenderfluidwannabealone @ateezswonderland @peachyy-jooniee @robertsbbygirl @hanniehq @smally97 @pixie0627 @haven-cove @jaerisdiction @btskzfav @bbyunicornbby @tinybada @cecilleasworld @mudent @mortal-advocate @jjcanwrite
Those who are italicized I could not tag for some reason :(
#ateez#poly ateez#ateez angst#ateez fluff#ateez smut#kim hongjoong#park seonghwa#jeong yunho#kang yeosang#choi san#song mingi#jung wooyoung#choi jongho#hongjoong x reader#seonghwa x reader#yunho x reader#yeosang x reader#san x reader#mingi x reader#wooyoung x reader#jongho x reader#mimikittysblog
648 notes
·
View notes
Text
the lamb and the wolf â park seonghwa
in which all he wanted was someone to love in his dark, lonely world⊠and then you came along.
hades!park seonghwa x fem!reader. genre. strangers to lovers. fluff. smut. warnings. heâs literally obsessed with mc, ankle injury, alcohol consumption, mention of cannibalism as a metaphor for love but itâs not really explicit, mc is described as innocent, explicit sexual content mdni, oral (f. receiving), unprotected, soft dom!hwa, big dick!hwa, praise, creampie. wc. 7.2k. rating. mature.
liloâs notes. iâve been working on this for two-ish months and iâm so happy to finally share it. writing this was fun, i love writing men infatuated with their lovers <33 the letter he reads does not belong to me and comes from âAlbert Camus, MarĂa Casares. Correspondence (1944-1959)â which is a collection of love letters sent between camus and casares. this particular one is letter #95.
listening to. from persephone, kiki rockwell // sunlight, hozier // liquid smooth, mitski // cinnamon girl, lana del rey // nothingâs gonna hurt you baby, cigarettes after sex
masterlist.
the realm of the dead was terribly dark and cold and, as the name would suggest, barren of life. for seonghwa, the ruler of the underworld who had spent thousands of years in the realm, this hadnât been a problem before. yet, he couldnât deny the temptation of the distant sounds of chirping birds and gentle breezes humming through the air above.
he was, of course, free to leave whenever he wished to but more often than not he was busyâruling over the souls that had passed or meetings with nymphs and the other deities. there had never been an inclination to explore, but somehow he found himself taking curious steps out of the cave entrance to his world.
and thatâs where he saw you.
you werenât a long way away from the entrance to the underworld, idling in a meadow and picking flowers and berries in a woven basket. the sunlight glinted off your rich skin, glistening on you manicured nails as your hands tended to the plants. the slow wind wafted through your soft-looking hair, making it dance in the air. he was entranced by the way the skirt of your dainty silk dress flowed as you moved around, hypnotised by the ivory fabric folding and brushing against your ankle with every step. you were beautiful in every sense of the wordâbut not the soft and comforting kind. no, not at all. in fact, he was quite alarmed by the notion of being so infatuated with a mortal at first glance.
seonghwa knew he was doomed from the moment he laid eyes on you. he wanted nothing more than for you to glance his way, willing to split himself in half or carve his heart right out of his chest to get a second of your attention. you spoke to yourself softly, muttering about how pretty you thought the little branch of lilac you plucked out of a bush was.
oh, how lovely your voice sounded; even the sun would not compare to itâs dulcet warmth.
a brilliant idea crossed his mind, one that he knew would get you to fall right in his grasp. and minutes later, he was able to conjure up a disturbingly realistic illusion of a rain storm. he descended back into his realm and all he had to do was wait.
you, however, flinched as the first droplets hit you. looking around for shelter, you spotted a cave entrance just a little way ahead, scrambling to sit there and wait for the storm to pass. the ground and walls felt cold against your body, nothing to separate your skin from the dark stone but your gown that was now soaked through and clung to your body.
minutes after you had sat down, a vaguely familiar scent breezed past you and had your head darting to look into the deeper part of the cave. there was no way it came from outside, not a single house in sight as the dewy smell of rain overtook the meadow. so your next most likely assumption was that it came from inside the cave. you stared into the seemingly endless abyss, squinting into the darkness for signs of, well, anything other than rocks and dirt.
and thatâs when you saw it. a brief flickering flame, metres away from where you were sat. in the seconds that it lit, you could faintly make out what looked to be a staircase, descending further into a cave. an intrigued hum left you as you pushed yourself up from the ground and walked to the strange stairs, basket of berries and flowers left behind. thereâs a reason they say curiosity killed the cat.
it was significantly colder as you stood at the top of the carved stairs, staring as far as you could see before they winded around and further into the unknown. another light came on, this time around the corner the stairs disappeared behind. with a final look at the exit of the cave, you began your unknowing descent into hell.
the light behind you flickered before going out, leaving you in darkness until you passed by the next torch, mounted on the damp stone. you planted your hand on the wall, afraid youâd lose your footing as each flame only lit the foreign path temporarily. the deeper you went, the colder you got. by the time you thought the stairs were endless, you could see faint puffs of white air emerging from your shaking lips with each breath you took. shivers ran through your body occasionally, your wet dress not doing anything to keep you warm.
just when you were going to give up and turn around to return to the surface, you stumbled at the unexpected absence of yet another step. your faint wince echoed through the small space as you rolled your ankle, instinctively holding yourself against the stone wall. your hand slipped from the wall for a second, a pebble falling and rolling until it stopped with an odd âclink.â you looked up in confusion to see what made the pebble stop with such a sound. looking with wide, bewildered eyes, a black and engraved set of double doors stood a few steps ahead of you. had they been there the whole time?
maybe someone lived there, someone who could help you. your father kept you safe and sound for as long as you could remember, teaching you to always see the best in people, rendering you a little sheltered and much too kind. perhaps this is what made you so trusting as you forced yourself to walk to the doors on limping legs. both doors had beautiful metal knockers mounted on them. the rusted brass resembled three dog heads, a heavy metal ring hanging from the snout of the dog in the middle. more than mildly nervous and with cold, shaking hands, you reached forward and tentatively lifted the ring of the right door before letting it knock against the dark wood.
moments later it swung open, held by a tall, pale-skinned man with slim fingers. for a moment you forgot what you were there for, caught off guard by the sharp eyes that looked down at you. your warm breath swirled in the air as you finally pieced together a sentence.
âiâm sorry, sir, but⊠i-i really meant to leave but i hurt my ankleâŠâ you spoke quietly, your voice an octave higher than it usually was.
his gaze softened, the light of a torch on the wall reflecting in his dark eyes, and he smiled down at you as he opened the door wider and stepped aside. âoh, you poor thing. please, come inside.â
seonghwa watched you walk past him and into this home he had conjured up just for your arrival. it was quite dark, illuminated by a fireplace and candelabras decorating shelves and tables. he didnât care enough to provide more light, completely entranced by the way you kneeled in front of the hearth, hands outstretched to warm them by the fire. they looked so much smaller compared to his. seeing you up close made his heart skip a beat, he wanted nothing more than to lay his hands on your smooth skin, run them through your damp hair, pat the thin and wet flowing dress dry and keep you warm. droplets of the rain ran from the top of you head down your face slowly, occasionally getting caught in your eyebrows or the corner of your beautiful lips.
he wondered fleetingly if they felt as soft as they looked. another bead of rain made it past your features, trailing past your jawline and neck. his eyes tracked it but when it disappeared under the fabric covering your chest, he refused to continue looking.
you felt his presence standing beside you a moment later, drawing your eyesâyour naĂŻve, innocent eyesâto look up at him. he offered you a hand to help you stand.
âcome, love, let me take a look at your ankle,â he smiled at you kindly, pulling you up helpfully as you took his hand. once you stood, you stumbled slightly, accidentally putting weight on your injured ankle and wincing. one of his arm quickly looped itself around your waist, holding you up against him so you wouldnât fall.
his touch was gentle yet you felt a certain firmness to it, feeling as if his warm hand was searing through your cold gown. your cheeks burned and you looked away shyly, something that had him biting back a smile as he guided you to sit at one of the sofas. he was mildly surprised by how small and delicate you felt in his arms. you felt fragile. there was something so seductive about that, the thought of breaking you in the most intimate of ways. but soon he had to let you go. after you settled into the cushions of the seat, his movements caught your eye.
your jaw nearly dropped when you saw him kneeling on the ground before you. though you werenât aware of it, something made you so special that you had a god getting on the ground on his knees in front of a mortal. his dark eyes found yours, voice as gentle as it had been the whole time.
âmay i?â
when you gave him a small nod, not trusting yourself to say anything, his hand grazed your calf before gently wrapping around your ankle and lifting it to rest on his thigh. despite his intimidating and malicious role among the deities, he was softer with you than anyone could ever imagine. he slipped off your shoe but kept your sock on, dragging the ruffled trim just under your heel so he could inspect the swelling at your ankle. the ruffles tickled you as he moved it, eliciting the most melodic giggle heâd ever heard.
when he glanced up at you, a smile stretched your tempting lips and making your smooth cheeks swell as you looked back down at him. he couldnât help but smile, endeared by everything you did.
âit tickles.â you explained through another giggle, looking down at him. as his gaze returned to your ankle, you took note of how close he was. if he leaned forward just a little heâd be able to brush his plump lips along your knees. he knew that, of course, since he planned it. every touch, every position, every word had been meticulously planned, it was no surprise to him how close be found himself.
well, other than you getting injured, everything had been planned.
his slender finger pressed against different areas of your swollen ankle with featherlight pressure, gauging where it hurt most. you winced occasionally, but a certain spot made you flinch and whimper.
âthere?â he whispered, looking up at you. his gaze was still tender as he gazed at you, his fingers pressing against that spot again with just a little more pressure. you knew he needed to check if it was really that spot, but in reality he wanted nothing more than to hear those lovely sounds tumble from your lips. to his delight, you did just that, bottom lip quivering slightly with the sound as you nodded. his gaze fell to your lips and he imagined kissing you, sucking your lower lip into his mouth, but he refocused his thoughts on your injury quickly.
âhow did you even hurt yourself like this?â his other hand moved to the knee of your uninjured leg, thumb brushing small circles soothingly.
âi missed a step on the stairs and rolled my ankle.â you frowned slightly, the cute downturn if the corners of your lips almost making him coo at you. you leaned forward to catch a glimpse of your ankle but it was hard to see in the dim light provided by the fireplace and various candelabras around on shelves.
âi see⊠how careless of you, dear,â he tutted, fingers tapping against your knee absentmindedly, âbut itâs okay, donât worry. itâs just a small injury⊠wait here for a moment while i go get something, alright?â
you nodded once more and he got up, disappearing through a doorway as your eyes traced over his figure. you looked around the room as you waited patiently. it was a simple sitting room slash entrance area at first glance, but upon looking closer you found there were many little breathtaking details littered around for those who cared enough to find them. intricately embroidered golden designs decorating the wine red carpet beneath your feet, the shelves lining the wall on either side of the fireplace stocked with worn books neatly.
silent brisk steps drew your eyes back to him as the handsome stranger returned, a little glass bottle and roll of bandages held in his hands. his cheeks warmed at the sight of you sitting there so pretty and obediently. seonghwa kneeled in front of you once again and brought your foot to the same position as before.
âiâm going to apply this,â he held up the bottle for you to see, a mysterious deep blue liquid swishing around inside, âitâll be cold and it might hurt a bit, but i promise to be gentle, okay?â after you nodded silently, he uncapped the bottle and poured a bit into his hand. âiâll need you to stay still and relax. can you do that for me, love?â
after you gave him a muttered âyesâ he flattened his palm over the swelling. true to his word, the liquid he had poured into his hand was icy cold and stung a little as he rubbed it in as gently as possible. if you had to describe the feeling, youâd compared it to hundred of pinpricks concentrated on one area. it was uncomfortable, to say the least.
your eyes squeezed shut and your hands dug into the couch beneath you. you felt his touch leave your knee but a second later his hand found itâs way to yours, slipping between your fingers for you to hold him instead of tearing up his couch. he squeezed reassuringly and his heart swelled when you squeezed back.
before you knew it, his warm voice filled the silence of the room. âall done. you can open your eyes now, darling, you did so well.â
you eyes opened slowly at his words and looked down. he was peering up at you with round caring eyes, making your stomach flutter. his hand on your ankle lingered before he pulled away so you could have a look at the bandages wrapped around it skilfully, his other hand still intertwined with yours.
âthank youâŠ?â you trailed off, indirectly asking for his name. despite him being a stranger, you somehow trusted this handsome man with your life. perhaps it was because he had shown you nothing but kindness thus far, every one of his actions illuminating warmth and care.
âof course. the ointment works fairly quickly, so you should be free to walk around just fine for a few hours at least,â his lips tugged into a small grin. he thought you were so cute, too shy to be upfront about your interest in him.
he wasnât blind, your increased heart rate below his touch didnât go unnoticed by him. for a moment, he considered lying to youâintroducing you to an identity that didnât exist in fear that youâd run away from him once he revealed himself. however, soon enough he came to the conclusion that he wanted you to love him, not some made up caricature. besides, he didnât have to tell you about his occupation just yet. âitâs seonghwa.â
you tested the syllables on your tongue and he couldâve sworn honey poured right out of your mouth with how sweet you sounded. he nodded encouragingly and you gave him your name. he decided it fit you and your serene disposition. you watched with a warming face as he lifted your hand to his lips, eyes locked on yours as he kissed your knuckles.
âpleasure to make your acquaintance, love.â he winked smoothly before standing from the ground, pulling you off the couch with him. his eyes glanced down at your dress. it was still wet but not nearly as drenched as it was before, though it still clung to your body, teasing him. âyou must be uncomfortable. if you want, i probably have a change of clothes for you.â
you smiled at his invitation gratefully, nodding. âiâd love that, thank you.â
âdown that hall,â he pointed in the direction he went earlier to get that odd liquid, âthe second door on the right is a bedroom. youâll find some clothes in the closet, i think theyâll fit you.â
you took a step towards the hall before stopping and turning around to look at him with a questioning gaze. it didnât take a genius to figure out what you were thinking. he fumbled to find a convincing excuse, speaking slowly. âmy, uh, sister used to live with me but she moved away recently, so her clothes are still there.â
the explanation satisfied you and he watched as you followed his instructions, eyes drawn to the way you hips swayed slightly with each step. you stepped through the door he told you to, yellow candlelight seeping into the hallway before you closed it behind you. but it didnât close fully and left you visible through the sliver. he forced his eyes away when he caught a glimpse of you pulling your gown off yourself.
just as he said, you found many suitable clothes in the shelves of the wooden dresser. the room itself was quite plain, though the bed looked more than comfortable. there were many options, though all of them seemed to be dresses of some kind. long or short, dark or pastel, silk or cotton, and everything in between. finally you settled on a flowy white nightgown, the skirt brushing against your thighs. you pulled on some clean socks and slippers and dried your hair as best you could with a towel you found before stepping out to join him in the sitting room again.
but when you got there, he was nowhere to be found. looking around in confusion, you breathed a sigh if relief when you heard him call your name for another room, beckoning you to join him. upon entering said room, it quickly became apparent it was a dining room.
the walls were practically black, much like the rest of the house so far, and made the room appear much darker than it probably actually was despite the multiple candelabras on the long wooden table and the extravagant chandelier hanging from the ceiling. he sat at the chair on the left of the head of the table, a meal set in front of the head. he gestured for you take a seat in front of it. you obliged quickly.
his eyes roamed over your figure, lips parting in a soft exhale at the sight of your bare thighs. fleetingly, he came to the conclusion he wanted to bury his head between them, let them squeeze and suffocate him as he ravished you. before he could further entertain those thoughts, the squeak of the chair brought him out of his head.
âi figured youâd be hungry, so i made a little something for you,â he spoke as you got comfortable in the seat, pushing a glass of water towards you, âi hope itâs up to your standards, dear.â
you gazed down at the bowl of what appeared to be chicken soup with vegetables before looking back up at him. âyouâre too kind, really, you didnât have to do all this for me.â
he was more than delighted by your kindness and manners, looking at him so cutely with the candlelight dancing in your eyes magically. âno but i did have to. i canât have you sitting here, injured and starved⊠plus, itâs nice to have company.â
âoh?â his final sentence piqued your interest, fiddling with the handle of your spoon. âyou donât get a lot of company?â
he really didnât, other than the souls that made down here after their bodies passed on. but thatâs a conversation for another time. he shook his head slightly, lifting a glass of wine you hadnât noticed before to his lips. he let it sit in his mouth for a moment before swallowing it and returning his gaze to you.
ânot very often, noâŠâ he explained slowly, setting the glass back on the table with a quiet clink before folding his hands beside it, elegant as ever, âpeople donât tend to come all the way down here and i donât tend to invite people over.â
a frown tugged at you lips and you turned your gaze away, feeling slightly ashamed. âiâm sorry to have bothered your peace then, seonghwa.â
he tensed, hands gripping each other just a little tighter. why on earth were you ashamed, why were you apologising? he reached over and placed a hand over your free one, momentarily distracted by how soft it felt in his grip before he was quick to reassure you. âoh no, darling, donât you dare apologise. youâre not bothering me at all, really. itâs been a long time since iâve enjoyed someoneâs company this much.â
âr-really?â you finally looked at him again, the warmth returning to his stomach as he faintly noticed one of the straps threatening to fall off your shoulder.
âreally,â he reaffirmed, turning your hand over so he could hold it properly, âi should be thanking you, if anything.â
you averted your gaze once again, this time feeling shy rather than ashamed; a fact that had him grinning. soon enough, you began eating your soup, humming at the taste approvingly after the first taste. you conversed leisurely as you ate, jumping from subject to subject naturally as if youâd known each other for years. you asked him why he wasnât eating with you, to which he said heâd already eaten and didnât feel hungry. this was, of course, a lie since deities like him donât need to eat anyway.
eventually, you finished, slumping back in your seat with a yawn. âthat was absolutely amazing. thank you, hwa.â
the new nickname had his cheeks tinting a soft pink but he hid it quickly. he watched you yawn. somehow everything you did felt adorable to him, the urge to scoop you up in his arms to hold you tightly and kiss you softly growing stronger by the second. if he werenât a man with unrivalled self-restraint and patience, he wouldâve done it by now.
âsomeoneâs tired, huh?â he cooed at you, crossing one leg over the other. âyou should go sleep in the room you got the clothes from. iâd prefer for you to stay until your ankle is fully healed, just in case.â
you nodded slowly, another yawn ripped from your throat as you got up and stretched your arms over your head. the movement caused the skirt of your nightgown to ride up, his breath hitching as he realised if it went up any further head be able to see your lacy white undergarments youâd borrowed from the dresser too. he distracted himself with a chuckle, standing up and guiding you out of the dining room to the bedroom by the small of your back.
before you knew it, you were on your back on the bed of the bedroom that supposedly belonged to his sister. your dress fell over your body entrancingly, tempting his hungry eyes as he stood over you, adoring the way your hair laid on the satin pillow. you turned to your side and curled up with your knees pulled to your chest. he caught a glimpse of your lacy panties before they fell over the swell of your ass as if they hadnât moved in the first place.
thoughts swarmed his mind, none of them appropriate. he imagined your legs wrapped around his waist, burying himself into the curve of your neck, sculpted for his face to fit right there. he longed to feel your soft curves against his fingers, not a single layer of clothing separating you.
âhwa?â the way you said his name made his thoughts snap to reality as his eyes found yours. the nickname sounded so wonderful with your voice, he wanted to bottle up the sound and keep it safe on a shelf for the rest of eternity. not only that, but the way you looked at him, lips parted softly with small breaths, cheeks flushed, and eyes looking wide and innocent. oh, how innocent you smelled to him. he was torn between preserving it and corrupting it.
âyes, love?â he whispered back, brushing a strand of your hair from you face as casually as possible.
âthank you⊠for everything,â you whispered, peering up at him with those same glittering round eyes, âiâll be sure to repay you for your kindness when i can.â
âthereâs no need, really. itâs nothing,â he chuckled quietly, gaze flitting all over your featuresâyou fluttering eyelashes, the slope of your nose, the curve of your neck, the slight upturn of the corners of your lips. he took a deep breath as discreetly as possible, reminding himself that there was a chance he wouldnât be able to convince you to stay with him, he shouldnât get too attached just yet.
somehow, he held himself back from pulling you into his arms and kissing you breathless. he pulled his hand back after letting his thumb brush against your cheekbone for a moment.
âiâll let you rest now,â he whispered, âsleep well. iâll see you in the morning, love.â
you muttered a soft âgoodnight, hwaâ in return before he was out of the room and shutting the door a second later.
the door clicked shut and you heard his footsteps getting more and more distant. you let out another quiet yawn, pulling the comfortable blanket over your body and up to your chin. your room was quiet, the silence oddly comforting. something about the place had that feel and despite being so far underground, it didnât feel claustrophobic at all. you compared it to home, your parents always bickering with each other or taking out their frustrations on you. it felt nice to be in a quiet space again, and you briefly wondered if you could stay a little longer than another day.
your eyelids became heavier with each blink in the dark before they ultimately closed completely, pulling you into a deep sleep.
though you didnât expect it to last so long, over a week passed and you were still staying with him in his little cave house. you didnât mind, of course, since he took such great care of you. in the week, youâd grown closer, treating each other like lovers though neither of you brought it up. heâd let you sit in his lap and youâd let him brush his fingers through your hair.
you stirred awake, one day short of having spent two weeks with him. today was one of those days where heâd gone out to run some errands, trusting you enough to leave you alone. with not much to do, you usually sat in his little library or took a nap until the evening. this time you chose the latter.
some hair clung to the thin layer of sweat on your forehead, your blanket displaced and only covering half of your left leg, having kicked it off in your sleep. for a second you couldnât remember where you were, but memories of the previous days returned quickly and you relaxed before sitting up and looking around the room. the candle had stayed on overnight, providing light in a place where windows really couldnât exist.
there was no indication of the time other than a clock on one of the bedside tables. assuming it was functional and accurate, it was 10:24 in the evening. you hummed, surprised youâd slept so much when usually youâd be awake hours before that. with a quiet groan, you realised there was no point in going back to bed, pulling yourself off the mattress and to the door.
you reached for the door handle but paused, pulling back to check yourself in the mirror. not wanting to look like a mess in front of seonghwa, you readjusted your dress so it sat on your body properly and tried your best to make your hair appear less messy. only then did you tiptoe your way out of your bedroom and to the sitting room.
he was back already, sat on the couch and readings a book, back straight and one leg crossed elegantly over the other. he wore something different. instead of the loose white shirt, black slacks and black corset, he now wore a black vest that had sheer black sleeves with black slacks. the neckline of his vest dipped low, revealing the lean muscles of his chest. you forced yourself to look away, settling into the armchair across from him, separated by a long coffee table.
âi donât bite, you know,â he spoke without looking up from his book, sounding amused that you sat so far away after how close youâd been the night before.
your daze cracked, chuckling as you stood and walking around the coffee table to sit beside him on his right. though you werenât touching, a few centimetres of space between you, you could feel his body heat radiating off him. he glanced down at your exposed thighs briefly before continuing to read, or at least trying to. his eyes were stuck on the same line for a minute, distracted by the way you leaned your head on his shoulder to read with him.
he contemplated pulling you onto his lap, missing the feel of your weight against him like the night before. you had insisted for him to carry you to bed, pouty and tired, and when he did, he had a hard time letting go of you and ended up sitting with his back against the headboard with you snuggled safely on his lap until you fell asleep.
knowing you wouldnât mind, he moved his right arm around your waist, slipping his hand down to your hip to make pulling you onto his lap easier. once you were there, straddling him so prettily, he let you rest the side of your head on his shoulder, your nose brushing against his neck as he tried his best to maintain his focus on his book. to the world he was a merciless king, but with you in his lap he was tender and caring.
you shifted your head, trying to look down at the book he was reading. your breath tickled him as you spoke. âwhatâre you reading?â
âoh,â he turned the book over for you to see the title. he let you read over, revelling in the feeling of your nose and lips accidentally grazing his neck. it tested every inch if his patience. feeling your heart beat against his chest and wanting so desperately to crawl into your ribcage, cradling your heart in his hands and peppering the beating muscle with kisses. he cleared his throat. âitâs a collection of poetry and letters.â
âyou like poetry?â you giggled quietly and he swore he could taste the sweetness of it.
âi do,â he nodded, the tips of his ears dusted a rosy pink, âwould you like me to read some to you?â
the offer made you feel giddy for some reason, glancing up at him with a grin as you nodded. you could only imagine how poetry would sound spoken by his divine voice.
seonghwa snickered at your excitement, flipping through the pages of his book to find something worthy of your ears. he stopped at a page near the end, his hand dropping back to your hip as he began reading. he traced a finger over your hipbone as he did, the light pressure making you squirm lightly in his lap.
âi have never surrendered myself entirely to anyone but you, and only recently. and to let my heart speak, when i am pressed against you, is an emotion and a peace that overflows all imagination.â
by the time he finished reading it, you were holding your breath, heart hammering against your ribs so hard you had no doubt heâd be able to feel it. the way he said it sounded less like a recitation and more like a confession, your stomach buzzing with anticipation as you sat up to look at him face to face, eye to eye, your hands resting on his chest.
your touch drove him to insanity. the soft press of your fingers against his vest, making it that much harder to hold himself back. he wanted to hold you against him forever. to inhale your scent so that his lungs would depend on you and only you. to touch you, to kiss you, to knit your flesh to his so youâd never leave him, to devour you, consume you. he wanted to do it all.
he could only whisper, âmay i?â
his words echoed what he said before tending to your ankle two weeks prior, the day you first met him. that felt so long ago, a nostalgic smile tugging at your lips as you nodded.
his hand squeezed you hip gently while the other moved to cup your jaw, wasting no time in pulling your face to his. it was a slow, reverent kiss that filled every inch of your senses with warmth. your lips felt softer than he imagined. when your lips finally touched, your fingers curled into his vest, sighing against his lips softly.
he shuddered at the sound, pulling your hips tighter against him and pressing his lips against yours a little harder, your body perfectly molded to his as if thatâs where you belonged. his tongue ran along your bottom lip, not pushing into your mouth, just tasting you enough to satiate his growing hunger. despite the way your hips rolled against him, guided by his hand and eliciting subtle gasps against his lips, he couldnât help but still find you so sweet, so innocent, as you let him kiss you breathless.
in a way, you reminded him of a little lamb, hunted by a wolf. one could say you had tamed him. he could easily tear out your throat, add you to his collection of souls, yet he decided to kiss you instead. kiss you so softly your cheeks warmed.
the next time your eyes fluttered open, you somehow found yourself in your room, still on his lap as he sat on the edge. his kisses slowed, being replaced with repeated pecks before he pulled away fully to rest his forehead against yours, panting.
he sighed your name and for a second you felt the world stop, the sound making your head spin. âdarling, please, let me taste you.â
your breath hitched at his whispered request, suddenly aware of your panties sticking to your wet core. wordlessly, you nodded and he manoeuvred you to lay on your back, making sure your head rested on your pillow comfortably.
he kissed your forehead, then your lips. from there he kissed his way further down over your nightgownâyour jaw, neck, shoulder, collarbone, the valley of your breast, your stomach, hipbones, the top of your pelvisâall the while murmuring praises of how beautiful you were. his hands rested on your waist and moved down to your thighs, spreading them apart without resistance as he kneeled between them.
with a final look at your curious face, looking down and following his every action with your eyes, he dragged the end of your skirt up, revealing more and more of your smooth thighs and baby blue cotton panties. he thought they were cute as he let the dress bunch up at your waist, leaning down to kiss the little satin bow of your undergarments before hooking his finger through them.
he began dragging them down but stopped abruptly when you place a hand over his own, worried eyes darting to look at you. all you had to do was say the word and heâd stop.
âno one has ever⊠you know,â you blushed, too shy to say no one had ever eaten you out, only giving your lower half a meaningful glance.
relieved, he chuckled lowly and kissed the hand atop his. âyou know iâll be careful, darling. just relax, okay?â
once you relaxed as he told you to, he slipped his fingers between yours, using his other hand to slip your underwear down and off you, tossing them in a random direction before finally taking a look at the parts of you he craved the most. he nearly moaned at the sight of your folds, glistening in the dim light as your engorged clit begged for his attention.
leaning down to kiss your inner thighs first, his tongue slid between your folds, licking an experimental stripe from your hole to your clit, drawing a soft whine from you. he himself groaned at the taste, the sweet nectar that seeped from your body.
âfuck, you taste so good.â
your thighs quivered around his head as he pushed his face deep into your heat, lapping up your juices and sucking at your nub with the desperation of a starved man. each prod of his tongue had your breath shaking, whimpering, as he drove you closer and closer to the edge. before, you figured it would feel good, but not quite this delicious.
when you came, you came with a faint cry of his name, body arching of the bed. your hand that didnât hold his moved to his hair at some point during his meal, tugging softly as your juices gushed out and you twitched from overstimulation, his tongue unrelenting and determined to swallow every last drop of your release.
he pulled away as you tugged at his hair, moving his torso up your body to kiss you. it was less a kiss and more feverish presses against each other, his tongue wandering between your teeth and making you taste yourself. you couldnât taste much, but to his sensitive taste buds you were the sweetest thing heâd ever had.
his hips pressed against yours and your breath hitched, feeling the weight of his erection straining against his pants and nudging your aching clit. he pulled back from your lips, searching your eyes for any sign that you wanted to stop. but you only nodded encouragingly and he grinned, his lips moving to your neck as he helped you sit up so he could pull your dress off you and finally see everything heâd been fantasising about.
he detached his lips from your pulse point to pull it the rest of the way and toss it in a random direction, his eyes trained on your breasts. they were just as pretty as he imagined, nudging you to lay down again so he could take one erect nipple into his mouth and suck and lick and kiss it and around it.
âyou look so pretty right now, love,â he muttered against your skin as he kissed his way to your other breast, his hands working on releasing himself from his pants while yours unbuttoned his vest, hands shaking with want.
you closed your eyes and leaned your head back against your pillow, your fingers gripping onto his bare shoulders as he dragged his tip through your folds, gathering your wetness. he kissed your cheek.
âtell me if anything hurts, okay?â
only once you breathed an âokayâ did he begin pushing in. he was blessed with a cock so big and perfect it hit every sensitive spot in your walls with precision as his length filled you slowly. his tip alone had you gasping softly, moaning incoherently as your eyes rolled back and fell shut, the stretch somehow pleasing you.
when he bottomed out, his eyes were drawn to the way he could see himself pressing through the bottom of your stomach, groaning as he passed his hand over the area and felt the bump. he stilled inside you, not moving until you told him so.
âp-please move, hwa.â
his pace throughout was relaxed, slow but not painfully slow, just enough roughness to his grinds to leave you breathless without tipping you over the edge just yet. it was when his hand slipped under your waist and angled you differently that you began feeling the familiar knot tighten in your abdomen.
he had a hard time stopping himself from releasing the moment he entered you, your walls hugging him so perfectly he choked back a moan with each stroke. everything about you felt as if youâd been made for him to worship, for him to indulge in. before you had come along, there was that occasional craving of romance, of wanting someone. he longed for someone to hold his hand, whose eyes replied to his so lovingly.
and there you were, beneath him, squeezing one of his hands while your dilated pupils showed him just how much you wanted him too.
you bit down on your bottom lip to hold back your sounds, something that made him chuckle and kiss the bridge of your nose. âdonât be shy, i want to hear you.â
his quiet praises made your face warm, letting out the softest of moans as his words shot straight to your core.
âyou take me so well, love.â âyouâre so precious and all mine.â âkeep your eyes on me, darling.â
at some point his deep slow strokes grew needy and faster, pounding against your g-spot repeatedly as moans and whimpers of the two of you filled the room, hot breaths mingling with each other. your next orgasm crashed down on you with little warning, your walls squeezing around him as he muffled your sounds with his lips.
he came soon after that, filling you with his release after you had told him it was okay. his face dropped into the crook of your neck, cock twitching until his body slumped against yours.
after cleaning you up with a damp towel and slipping a new pair of panties over your legs, he joined you in bed once more and wrapped his arms around you. your legs tangled together and your chest pressed against his, your head tucked under his chin as you drifted back to sleep, lazy kisses placed onto the crown of your head.
he sighed softly and shut his eyes, filled with thoughts. now that heâs had you, he could hardly see himself letting go of you. but why would he? you were all he wanted and more.
networks. @cromernet @wonderlandnet @cultofdionysusnet @pirateeznet
permanent taglist. @ad0rechuu @sankatchu @mlink64 @yeosangsbb @seonghwasbbgirl @likexaxdaydream @dreamingofyeo @yalyallic @yunhoswrldddd @coffee-addict-kitten @thunderous-wolf @chngbnwf
#cromernet#wonderlandnet#cultofdionysusnet#pirateeznet#ateez x reader#ateez#park seonghwa smut#seonghwa x reader#seonghwa headcanons#seonghwa angst#seonghwa fluff#seonghwa imagines#ateez reactions#ateez smut#ateez fluff
2K notes
·
View notes
Text
opposites attract w/ addams!matz
itâs finally here⊠i spent so long on this and im finally happy enough with it to give it to you guys!! i hope you enjoy it as much as i enjoyed writing it <333
words - 7.2k
genre - smut/fluff
warnings - sugar mommy!seonghwa, mommy kink, sugar daddy!hongjoong, daddy kink, cute!reader, sub!reader, dom!seonghwa, switch!hongjoong, unprotected sex, creampie, double penetration (2 in 1), clit play, cum eating, collaring, partially clothed sex, seonghwa in a tulle robe, mentions of seonghwa in a dress, iâm so horny for seonghwa guys, mentions of drinking but everyone is sober, pet names (mommy, daddy, mi amor, cara mia, dove, love, lamb), i think thatâs it?
ââââââââââââââââââââââââââ
The fire crackles to your left as you lay before it for warmth. The grizzly bear rug - which youâd affectionately nicknamed Jongho, once youâd finally gotten used to the morbid thing - is soft beneath you, and you have to stop yourself from slipping away into a peaceful slumber atop it.
Although you assume your desire to sleep has more to do with the book in your hand than it does the rug. It had been carefully placed atop the side table next to the chez and since you had nothing better to do, you decided to read it. Only it seems it was written when Shakespeareâs great-great-great grandfather was still a twinkle in his father's eye, so comprehending a single word of it is proving to be more difficult than you originally anticipated. For all you know, you could be reading a recipe book and youâd be none-the-wiser.
For that exact reason, it doesn't take long for you to slam the book closed in frustration, tossing it to the side. It boinks the back of Jonghoâs head, bouncing off and landing somewhere on the parquet floor. You canât be particularly bothered to check where itâs landed, knowing that if you do, youâll be liable to clean up after your mini-tantrum. The longer the location of the book remains a mystery, the longer you can stay swaddled in the blanket of warmth that Jongho and the fire are providing you with.
âLittle dove?â A voice calls from the doorway to the sitting room. Your head perks up and you glance over to where Hongjoong is leaning against the stone archway with a glass of whisky in hand. You smile at him, which he returns, âI didnât even notice you were here. When did you arrive?â
He takes a few steps into the room before coming to a halt upon spotting your body that had previously been hidden by the chez lounge. Youâre lying on your tummy, head in hands and feet kicked up in the air. Itâs quite obvious youâre not trying to seduce him with the way you're staring up at him with innocent eyes. In fact, once he spots the book tossed a couple of feet away, he can tell that your behaviour is more on par with a petulant child than a seductress. If it werenât for your outfit, heâd perhaps find you adorable, but thatâs the last word heâd use to describe that tiny little tennis skirt youâre wearing.
The hem had flicked up at some point, revealing just a little more thigh than you realise. If Hongjoong looks carefully heâs almost sure he can see the crease of where your ass cheek meets your thigh. He averts his gaze, if only to stop himself from pouncing on you and instead, he lets it travel down your soft legs. His eyes donât get far, however, as seconds later his pupils come to rest on the thigh-highs you wear. The way they dig into your thighs so prettily, your soft flesh spilling over the top, draws him in.
He gulps down the rest of his whisky to calm himself.
âAbout fifteen minutes ago,â you shrug before laying yourself completely flat against the bear you seem to adore so much. Your fingers curl into its fur and you stretch your legs out behind you. Hongjoong almost finds you cute, but the way you move only brings more attention to your thighs. He notices the purple marks that had been left between them only days prior have faded, for the most part, although the memory alone makes his cock throb, and he quickly manoeuvres himself so heâs sitting on the chez with one leg firmly over the other to hide the growing tent in his black, pinstripe slacks.
âWhy didnât you call for us, my dove?â He places his empty glass down on the side table, the cubes of ice clinking musically against the sides, âyou know we wouldâve come running to you.â
You flip onto your back, rolling just a touch closer to Hongjoongâs feet. A shiver runs through you as the cold patch of Jonghoâs fur rubs against your skin, and you almost want to shuffle back to the patch youâd already spent the last quarter of an hour warming up with your body. You refrain. Itâs nice to be close to Hongjoong, and besides, you can get a better look at him from this angle. Always so handsome, every single pore in his body oozing eloquence and grace. If you ever get to meet the demon who created such a tempting individual, youâd have to thank them personally.
Hongjoong feels the same way, desire and temptation filling him from top to bottom as you reveal the front of your outfit. The corseted top you wear hugs your breasts oh so perfectly, accentuating them in a way that would have a Victorian harlot gasping with jealousy. If you were, in fact, a harlot, Hongjoong would be willing to pay whatever it took for just a peek at your body.
âSeonghwa doesnât like it when I donât use my indoor voice,â you mumble through pouted lips. The way they pucker reminds him of all the pretty little sounds you let slip through them when he and Seonghwa are taking you apart. They play a symphony in his head, dizzying him as he further succumbs to your temptations.
âYou shouldâve come to seek us out then,â his voice is a little gravellier than it had been just a moment or two ago, his desire to ruin you only growing stronger by the second, âYou know, rather than just lying here and waiting for us to stumble upon your little tantrum.â he gestures over to where the book still lays discarded on the ground.
You roll your eyes and let out a grunt of dismay.
âItâs not a tantrum,â you whine childishly, âIâm just bored, and that book was dumb.â
He hums as he watches you sulk with your face pressed up to the rug. Youâre incredibly charming, actually, and all he wants to do is reach down and pull you into his lap. Perhaps whisper comfort to you as he toys with you a little. Turn you into a gooey mess, both mind and body. He pushes those thoughts away, yet the way you look at him draws them back. Youâre the picture of innocence with glistening eyes, body spread out on his rug as if youâre too dumb to care about the amount of skin showing. Perhaps you are; it doesnât seem like youâve even noticed that your skirt has now lifted enough for him to see the front of your white cotton panties.
He wants to tear you to shreds.
âBored, hm?â he grunts out through gritted teeth. His hard cock is aching at this point. Itâs a white-hot ache that sits deep in his balls. He can feel that they desire nothing more than to be emptied into you.
âBored and restless,â you sigh as you let your fingers intertwine with Jonghoâs fur.
Hongjoong hums in understanding, a grin rising to his face as you so graciously drop all the answers to his problems in his lap. He almost gets down onto the floor himself to kiss you, but somehow manages to hold himself back.
âI have an idea, little dove,â he says. âHow about you go upstairs and see Mommy?â
And just like that, time seems to stop. The suggestion brings all of your attention to Hongjoong who is staring you down like a lion on the prowl. Thereâs a dangerous smirk on his lips, the man baring his teeth as if heâs about to go in for the kill. You gulp as you push yourself into a sitting position, feeling every part âpreyâ as he seems predator.
âYou think itâll help?â you take in a sharp breath, âi-if I go and see⊠Mommy?â
âOf course, I do, little doveâ he leans in close and grabs hold of your chin between his fingers. His fingers are a little cold to the touch, which sends a shudder through your body. The reaction you have makes him chuckle, âNow be a good girl and run along, wonât you? Daddy wonât be far behind.â
The second his grip loosens on your face, youâre scrambling to your feet and rushing out of the room. Your socks almost make you slip on the lacquered parquet. Hongjoong chuckles as you balance yourself before disappearing into the stairwell. You take the stairs two at a time, footsteps thundering through the house. There's no doubt in your mind that Seonghwa will give you a lecture about your volume the moment he spots you, but thatâs at the back of your mind right now. All you can think about is whatâs to come.
You step foot on the landing, practically skipping down the hallway until you reach the open doorway to an all-too-familiar room. You knock desperately, not bothering to wait for a response before pushing it open and stumbling inside of the master bedroom.
Immediately your eyes hone in on Seonghwa, lying on the bed in all his glory, nothing but a black tulle robe to cover his lithe body. His wet hair hangs over his forehead in elegant waves, dripping droplets of water down his nose as he relaxes. Despite your desire to have him take you in any way he deems fit, you canât help but stop for a second to admire the view.
âI thought I heard you coming,â his silken voice beckons you in like a siren. You follow it, stepping closer to your doom with every step, âalthough it wasnât difficult. Iâd be surprised if the people living four towns over couldnât hear you.â
He locks eyes with you, dark pupils drawing you even further in. You shuffle toward him until youâre standing by his nightstand. A pretty hand reaches out to rest upon your waist, fingers dancing across the pastel material of your corset. Seonghwa reaches around the back to where the ribbon holds it in place and gives it a playful tug.
âI was just excited to see you,â you defend as he continues to play with the bow at the base of your spine, âDaddy sent me.â
The fingers pause for a millisecond before going back to what they were doing. They pull at the ribbon, tempting it looser and looser the longer they play. You have no doubt the bow will slip open any time now.
You canât find it in you to care.
âAnd why did Daddy send you to me?â His lips are pretty as he talks, plush and pouty with a natural red tint to them. He looks vampiric; black eyes, glassy skin, crimson lips. You move closer still until the mattress presses firmly against your thighs, âwere you misbehaving?â
You shake your head at the suggestion. Bar the book, which Hongjoong wasnât even there to witness you throw, youâd been nothing but a good girl. Perhaps a little disrespectful at times, but nothing Hongjoong couldnât have handled quickly and efficiently by himself.
âNo?â Seonghwa tugs you onto the bed as he speaks. The hand that rests on your body works hard to rearrange you until youâre straddling him prettily. He admires the way your tiny little skirt bunches up at the top of your thighs, revealing the wet patch at the front of your panties. His eyes can hardly tear themselves away, and his dick begins to stir beneath the translucent fabric of his robe, âperhaps he just thinks a good fucking is what you need, my lamb. Is that it? Do you need your Mommy to help look after you, hm?â
This time you nod. Youâd love nothing more than for Seonghwa to take care of you - he always does it so well. So slow that you canât help but become dizzy with desperation; so soft that you canât help but feel like a precious artefact being studied under Seonghwaâs watchful gaze; so loving that you feel nothing but safe in his grasp, able to turn off your mind and just enjoy him.
Seonghwa.
And upon that revelation, the man finally lets the bow slip open. Your corset loosens, gaping a little at the top. Your tits help to hold it up, but as Seonghwa begins to work on loosening the ribbon, you feel it start to slip away.
âArms up,â he says as he grabs the material. You do as he asks, and he wastes no time in setting your top half free. You know better than to try and hide yourself from him, so when you lower your arms once more they remain glued to your sides - just as Seonghwaâs eyes remain glued to your chest. âPretty little lamb,â he whispers, his face remaining stoic but his words soft. You can tell he means them.
âDo you want to take your skirt off too?â You nod, âGo ahead then, lamb; mommy can't do everything for you.â And whilst youâre under the impression that Seonghwa can - and mostly does - do everything for you, you obey. Slipping off of his lap, your hands work on the zipper, easing it down until the skirt can no longer stay up. Without so much of a touch from you, it slips down your thighs, exposing your white panties completely. You remove the skirt the rest of the way, throwing it on top of your corset to create a messy little pile of clothes upon Hongjoongâs pillow.
You look to Seonghwa for further guidance, your restless mind seems to enjoy being told what to do. It craves the softness that you so often get from him. The gentle touch and the gentle words that soothe you. The strict instructions that stop you from having to think for yourself, Seonghwa and Hongjoong - Mommy and Daddy - taking care of you entirely. Itâs exactly what you need right now.
âMy darling lamb,â Seonghwa whispers as he holds his arms out for you. You shuffle forward slightly, allowing him to tug you into a horizontal embrace, âWhilst I do love you in the family colours,â you know he means black - he and Hongjoong so often dress you up in expensive black lingerie before a night of intimacy. they love making you âtheirsâ in any way possible, and wearing the âfamily colourâ is just another way to do that, âI must admit that the way your pretty pussy slicks up these dainty white panties is a lovely sight.â
His hands work together, arranging your body in his grasp until youâre lying just perfect for him. Your head sits in the crook of one elbow, leaving his hand free to play with your hair. The other arm lays on the soft flesh of your tummy. You relax into his touch, despite the fact that his hand is already beginning to move south. Still, he makes every movement so intentional that when his fingers do eventually reach the wet patch on your panties, it only makes you relax even further into him.
âSo wet, lamb,â he murmurs into your ear, âwho caused this?â
Obviously, he knows the answer, but he canât help but take the opportunity to tease you. To see you squirm under his gaze as he waits for your answer is so entertaining to him. He knows itâs even more entertaining when you begin to stutter as pleasure wracks through your body; he begins to draw lazy circles against your clothed clit.
âY-you and daddy,â you reply, voice breathy as Seonghwa increases the pressure on your sensitive bud, âyou a-always make me so wet, MommyâŠâ
He chuckles as he feels your hips twitch against his fingers. You want more, and whilst normally Seonghwa would have you wait for it, teasing you until heâs decided you're ready for it, he canât help but want to indulge you in your desires now. You're so good for him, he thinks to himself as he changes the pace a little. As your face screws up in pleasure, a smile rises to his own.
He continues at that pace, gauging how you're feeling by your facial expressions and the pretty sounds you make. When you bite your lip or furrow your brow, he knows you want more and so he adds more pressure until your mouth gapes wide and little high-pitched moans come from the back of your throat. That's how he knows you're happy. That is what he always aims to achieve because his pleasure, and Hongjoongâs for that matter, often comes from yours. Making the sweet little creature that theyâd so lovingly taken under their wing happy is all they truly desire.
And you are, happy that is; falling apart under Seonghwaâs gentle touch will always be where youâre happiest. It's even better when he finally slips your panties to the side and puts his warm, delicate fingers directly onto your clit. You let out a heavy sigh as he spreads your lips with his index and ring finger, giving his middle finger an open pathway to the little button that is practically throbbing with the need to be played with again. And when he touches it, this time directly, it's even more electric than it was before. A bolt of pleasure shoots through you and you struggle to pin yourself to the bed. Your spine arches as you let out a loud whine. Fuck, it feels so good, and heâs barely even touched you yet.
Seonghwa begins to rub circles again, only this time without any barrier to dull the sensation. Magical, is the only word that you can use to describe the way it feels, each tender touch sending shocks of lightning through your body. It's like you don't have control over it as your hips buck against his hand, socked feet desperately rubbing against one another as it will do anything to help you ground yourself. Nothing can help now, not when Seonghwa has you feeling so high with just a few simple touches.
It doesn't take long until you feel it building up inside of you, racing to the top of that peak quicker than you can comprehend. You can feel your hole clenching around thin air, desperately trying to grip onto nothing. Perhaps Weonghwa would finger your next, preparing you for whatever is yet to come. You think youâd like nothing more than to be spread open with his lithe fingers, and it's that thought that finally pushes you over the ledge.
Your orgasm hits as the door swings even further open and Hongjoong walks in just in time to see you squirming under Seonghwaâs touch. He smirks at the sight of his darling husband taking such wonderful care of their little love, caressing your hair as he guides you through the intense feeling that is flowing through your body so rampantly. His fingers slow to a stop at just the right second, leaving you a panting mess in his arms.
âWhat a time to arrive,â Hongjoong says, voice clear as a bell as he makes his presence known. Seonghwa, of course, noticed him the second he walked in; the pair always did seem to have this weird, almost telepathic thing going on. They told you it was just true love at work, which was something you wholeheartedly believed, âIt always is such a beautiful sight to see you cum, my dove. I could watch it forever and never get bored.â
Seonghwa hums out a chuckle at that, âNow isn't that a novel idea, lamb!â He presses a kiss to your temple, âPerhaps weâll have to do that one day; a full day of making you cum over and over and over againâ
âMaybe, Mommy,â is all you can spit out in response to their teasing, nodding along as if you're not dreading the idea of a whole day of overstimulation. The two men smile at your eagerness to please despite your obvious displeasure. Perhaps theyâd suggest it again when you arenât as lust-drunk as you seem to be now. Their only goal at this moment is to satiate you, not fulfil their own fantasies. They could wait a little while to put those into play.
Hongjoong shrugs off his jacket before clambering onto the bed, effectively trapping you between the two of them. Just like Seonghwa, he takes a moment to play with the hair that frames your face. He twists a strand between two fingers before tucking it behind your ear. Upon closer inspection, he can't help but notice the H pendant that dangles from your lobe. He wonders if Seonghwa has noticed the matching S sitting in your other ear, yet. It always does make the tall man so happy to see you wearing one of the many gifts they shower you in.
âI have something for you,â Hongjoong says, the earrings acting as a reminder of the box heâs had stored in the drawer of his nightstand for what seems like forever, now. They had been waiting for the right moment to present it to you, but right now seems as ârightâ as any, âwould you like to see it?â
You watch as he leans over to pull open his drawer, fetching a black oblong box from its confines. The box itself is nothing of note, but he passes it to you with such care, and you just know that whatever is inside of it is special. Your eyes meet with his, asking for permission to open it. He gives you a single nod in return.
You slip the lid off of the box.
âOh,â you whisper as you lay eyes on what appears to be a collar of some sort. A thin velvet band that locks with a clasp at the back and finishes with a delicate bow at the front. Intricate lace frills surround the velvet, giving the collar more volume, yet keeping its soft appearance. A pastel pink pearl drips from a tiny metal ring that sits at the centre of the bow. Behind it is a petite chrome plate embossed with the letters âH&Sâ in a fanciful font. It's beautiful, and you can't help but tell them that.
âYou like it?â Seonghwa asked, tilting your chin up so you were looking him in the eyes. With the most genuine smile you can muster, you nod, âIâm glad.â
You feel Hongjoong close in beside you. He reaches an arm over your body to pick the collar up with a gentle hand. The velvet shifts in the dim light that shines from the chandelier above, and it changes colour right before your eyes, from black to a beautiful shade of magenta. You seem to recall Seonghwa wearing a similar dress once upon a time. It was black, just like your collar, but whenever he moved, the fabric rippled and in doing so, caused it to shift into a deep crimson. He and Hongjoong had waltzed together that night. It's nothing out of the ordinary for them, but that night sticks out to you specifically because of the sheer beauty of Seonghwa's dress.
âWe wanted to give you something to remind you that you are ours,â Hongjoong tells you, voice as soft as the velvet on the collar, âbecause you are. From the moment we saw you, we knew you were ours. From now until forever, dove.â
And with that, he presses the fabric to your throat, dragging his fingers along it until they reach the clasp at the back. He fastens it, fingers lingering for a moment before pulling away empty-handed. You struggle to hide your smile as your mind fumbles over itself, repeating âtheirs, theirs, theirs,â over and over as if the fabric pressing into your jugular wasn't enough of a reminder of that fact.
With your newfound sense of belonging that you hadn't even realised you were missing, you find it easy to lean forward and take what is rightfully yours. Your eyes flutter closed as you steal a kiss from Seonghwa. Upon feeling your lips bump against his, lacking the grace or elegance he was used to when initiating kisses himself, he can't help but let out a surprised squeak. He soon finds his feet, though, taking control back in a matter of seconds and pushing you back against Hongjoongâs solid body. The clothed chest acts as a support for Seonghwa as he wraps a hand around your throat, softly stroking the jewellery as he deepens the kiss.
A tongue slips between your lips as a hand slips beneath the waistband of your panties. You struggle to focus on the way Seonghwa licks into your mouth when Hongjoong tugs the white fabric down your thighs, fully exposing you while the two men remain at least somewhat covered. You shift your legs slightly to aid him in his mission of removing them fully, never once pulling away from Seonghwa. You mightâve mentally praised yourself for multitasking if it weren't for Seonghwa shifting his body slightly, hard dick now pressing against your lower stomach through the tulle of his robe. Just one flick of the wrist and it would be fully exposed, ready to slip inside of you.
You moan into Seonghwaâs mouth.
He pulls away, panting desperately as he regains breath.
âHell above, lamb,â Seonghwa utters, adams apple bobbing as he exclaims, âYou really are a most devilish creature under that innocent exterior, aren't you? Pouncing on me like a little bear cub, hm?â
You go to answer, a touch of snarkiness on the tip of your tongue. Barely a sound leaves your lips, though, as a finger presses into your core and your words turn into a long, drawn-out whine. The finger bottoms out pretty soon, and that's how you can tell itâs Hongjoongâs; shorter than Seonghwaâs by a mile, yet ever so slightly thicker. As he adds a second almost immediately, you can't help but moan at the stretch.
âFuck, Daddy,â you keen. Your head tips forward, landing with a heavy thud against the exposed part of Seonghwaâs chest, âyour fingers feel so good.â He curls them inside of you, tempting a tiny squark from your lips. Then he does it again, routinely twisting them as he pumps them in and out. The sound they make as they swim amongst your gooey wetness is quite frankly obscene, but you find it hard to feel humiliated when so much pleasure flows through you.
Then you feel a second pair of fingers line up against your core, bullying their way in alongside Hongjoongâs. The stretch makes you choke on your spit, gurgling slightly as the longer pair brush against the squishy membrane of your g-spot. Like Hongjoong had moments before, Seonghwa begins to curve them slightly, petting your walls as his husband continues thrusting in and out.
The stretch is immense, almost reaching the familiar girth of Seonghwaâs cock. Like his fingers, it was long and whilst not necessarily thin, it didn't quite match up to the girth of Hongjoongâs. For that reason, you usually take Seonghwa first, but as you feel yet another finger press into your core, you can't help but wonder whether theyâre prepping you to take Hongjoong first instead.
The fingers work together to open you up, spreading you wider than usual. You don't complain, letting them do whatever they choose with your body while you lay there limp and ready for them to take in whatever way they deem fit. They know your body well enough for you to give them full control. You trust them with yourself fully.
Hongjoong slips his three fingers out, and before long you can hear slurping above your head. Seonghwaâs fingers stutter within you, and you canât help but feel a little curious. You flick your gaze to Seonghwaâs face, jaw dropping upon seeing his lips wrapped around Hongjoongâs digits, licking them clean of your juices. His eyelashes flutter gracefully against his porcelain-smooth cheeks, and even with his husband's fingers down his throat you canât help but think heâs beautiful.
Hongjoong pulls them loose with a pop and dries the mixture of your juices and Seonghwaâs spit against his suit pants before he unzips them, his cock springing free almost immediately. Itâs angry and red with precum flowing freely from the tip as if itâs about to explode if it doesnât get something soon. You reach an arm out to touch it, but Hongjoong darts a hand out to catch it.
He tuts.
âPatience, little dove,â he whispers with a smirk, âMommy may have let you take what you want, but I still expect you to do as I say.â
He wastes no time in shifting down the bed, gracefully moving until the head of his cock is lined up with your core. You half expect Seonghwa to pull his fingers free, but he doesn't. Hongjoongâs blunt head presses into your still-stuffed hole, only just breaching the pink rim. It's a painful stretch with Seonghwaâs fingers still inside of you, but Hongjoong goes slow, allowing your cunt to accommodate him at its own pace. With Seonghwa still petting that one spot, you find it fairly easy to let pleasure take over, the pain becoming more and more bearable until it fades into nothing.
It feels like it takes an age for Hongjoong to bottom out. Despite his cock not being tremendously long - perhaps even a little shorter than average - it seems to go on forever as he pushes it into you. The delicious stretch combined with the constant assault on your g-spot sends you hurtling towards another orgasm. All it takes is for Hongjoongâs pelvis to finally come to a standstill against yours, his thick cock fully sheathed within your warm, wet cavern, and you're coming undone. Your walls tighten around him, pressing Seonghwaâs fingers up against the shaft of Hongjoongâs cock. The latter bows his head and lets his jaw go slack. A guttural moan falls from his throat as he tries his hardest not to cum on the spot.
âMy darling lamb,â Seonghwa chuckles into your ear as he slows his fingers to a stop. You're grateful for the break in stimulation, although you know it isn't bound to last, âyouâre so sensitive tonight. It makes me wonder how you might react when Iâm inside of you too. I bet youâd like that, yes? Mommy and daddy inside of you at the same time?â
You nod, although you don't quite let the true meaning of his words sink in. All you know is that you want them both, so incredibly bad. Your passionate, commanding Hongjoong hand in hand with your caring yet fiercely protective Seonghwa; theyâd keep you with them forever if you let them. Youâd live in their macabre bubble, surrounded by their morbid warmth and ghastly traditions. Your days would be filled with them; Hongjoong could teach you to fence or play chess, and Seonghwa would no doubt teach you about all the deadly plants he keeps in his greenhouse. Youâd spend your evenings watching them Waltz in front of the fireplace, a funeral march playing from their old megaphone. Perhaps youâd join them from time to time, pressed to Hongjoongâs front as Seonghwa directs your movements from the chez.
And once the evening activities have drawn to a close, theyâd drag you upstairs to bed to take you apart piece by piece. Each night they would push you to the edge of sanity before slowly bringing you back down to earth. Theyâd treat you like the most precious thing on the planet; a ruby to be polished and protected.
You want it more than anything. Seonghwa and Hongjoong - mommy and daddy - forever and always.
âWant you, Mommy,â you whisper, choking on your own words as Hongjoong begins to pull out slowly until only the tip is left sitting within your velvety walls. You cry out as his hips snap forward, propelling his entire length into you once more. It feels so good, and Seonghwa takes the hint to begin moving his fingers once more. It drives you insane. Chants of âplease, please,â fill the air, although you aren't quite sure what youâre begging for.
Seonghwa looks to Hongjoong, who lifts his head to see the silent question on his lover's face.
âOne more, Cara Mia,â he grunts out as he pistons his hips into you, âsheâs so tight.â
âOf course, Mi Amor,â Seonghwa hums and a mere few seconds pass by before you feel a third finger press against your entrance. You squirm as he pushes it inside of you, wriggling its way inside beside Hongjoongâs cock and his other two fingers. It's a snug fit, but you find it much easier to get used to than the initially painful stretch of Hongjoongâs member.
And even with the third finger added, they do much of the same, Seonghwa gently massaging your walls as Hongjoong pounds into you. The force of his hips increases with each thrust, making your mind go hazy. It's only made worse when Seonghwa begins to spread his fingers within you, making you squeal. His hand that still rests behind your head quickly comes to sit upon your fluffed-up barnet, petting it soothingly as he stretches you out even further.
You're babbling nonsense at this point, but neither man pays it any mind as they work you open past what you thought to be your limit. They're encouraged by the tiny pleas, keeping up their pace as youâre faced with a third orgasm. Perhaps that was what Seonghwa was waiting for because as he feels your walls tighten around his fingers, he begins to slip them out. You whine at the loss, even though Hongjoong is still working hard to fuck you through your orgasm, whilst somehow still staving his own off. Seonghwa just hushes you with a small peck to the lips.
He puts a hand on your shoulder, shifting you and Hongjoong ever so slightly. Just enough so he can slip behind you, his warm chest pressing up against your spine. For a moment, you wonder what he's doing, but then the chiffon of his robe moves to expose his cock and youâre struck by a sudden realisation of what both at the same time actually means.
That would explain why they were so determined to stretch you outâŠ
Hongjoongâs hips slow to a stop with his member still deep inside of you as you feel the head of Seonghwaâs brush against your entrance. You moan as he forces the tip in with only a small amount of resistance from your stretched-out pussy. The unpleasant burn of being opened up is there again, but you bite your lip and let Seonghwa push himself into you alongside Hongjoong. You know the pain will dissipate soon, having already experienced it once with Hongjoong just a short while prior, but holy fuck does it hurt right now.
A helpful finger - although, in your dizzy state you can't quite work out whoâs it is - finds its way to your clit, rubbing firm yet somehow also delicate circles on the little bundle of nerves. As you focus on the pleasure you get from that, itâs fairly easy to forget about the unpleasant ache between your thighs, and within minutes youâre once more able to relax into the ministrations of the men.
You whimper as the taller man bottoms out much quicker than Hongjoong did; perhaps he was just desperate from having to watch his husband fuck you for a while first. His tip gently brushes against your cervix, pulling a gasp from your lips as you feel him grazing against the sensitive muscle. He shushes you in your ear as he slowly begins to move. His thrusts are lazier than Hongjoongâs, slower and gentler just as they always are. It suits him; he always had been more restrained and patient than his shorter counterpart who is also beginning to thrust into you once more.
The contrast between the way the two men treat your body, as well as the determined finger upon your button, is enough to drive you crazy. Youâre left as nothing but a moaning mess between them, squirming as they fuck into you at different paces; Seonghwa slow and gentle and Hongjoong quick and animalistic. Youâre putty in their hands at this point, purely there for them to use and pump full of cum.
It doesn't take long for Hongjoong to do just that.
âIâm close, my dove,â he groans into your ear, âyour precious cunt is squeezing me so tight; I can't hold on any longer.â
Mere moments later, his hips stutter to a stop, his dick still deep inside of you. You know exactly whatâs coming, but it still doesnât stop you from moaning as you feel the thick, warm liquid fill you to the brim. Seonghwa only fucks it deeper, forcing the feeling of fullness upon you. You expect it to vanish any minute; Hongjoong will pull out and the cum will flow out with him.
He doesnât, though; more accurately, Seonghwa doesnât let him.
Just as you feel Hongjoong begin to retract his softening cock, the hand that lies against your pubis, fingers dancing upon your clit, shoots out to catch his hip. He whines, more pathetic than youâve ever heard him before; itâs a beautiful sound, and you canât help but clench around them when you hear it.
âCara mia, please,â he whimpers, jaw opening wide in a silent moan as Seonghwa continues to thrust into you, cock rubbing repeatedly against Hongjoongâs own oversensitive member, âitâs too much.â
Youâve never seen him so submissive before, and you have to admit you find it hotter than you feel you should. The two of you moan out in unison, the combination of Seonghwaâs languid movements combined with the control he has over the both of you is enough to send you spiralling to the end. You can feel it coming, but with the lack of stimulation on your clit, you canât quite get there. You open your mouth to protest, but then Seonghwaâs tip pushes through the milky cum to brush against your cervix, and your mind is once again empty.
âBut you can take it, Mi Amor,'' Seonghwa taunts from behind you, voice low and velvety in your ear. In a last-ditch attempt to keep any semblance of your sanity, you let your hands shoot out to grab at Hongjoongâs black shirt. Itâs damp with sweat beneath your hands, but as you squeeze the soft material between your fingers, you canât find it in you to care. âYou can take it so our little lamb can feel good; keep her stuffed full until her Mommy can cum inside of her too.â
Hongjoong nods wordlessly, too focused on panting his way through the overstimulation to form any words. Through hooded eyes you watch his face contort with pained pleasure, eyes squeezing shut and brow furrowing as your fluttering walls and Seonghwaâs twitching cock torture his sensitive shaft. He looks so beautiful, and while you know youâll probably never have the chance to overpower him in such a manner, you're happy you can at least bear witness to it now.
And with the knowledge that Hongjoong will behave, Seonghwa moves his fingers back to your clit. They dive straight in, tweaking the throbbing bud in a way that draws a loud cry of pleasure from your lips. Your walls tighten around both menâs members; an action which has them simultaneously moaning in your ears. Knowing just how much of an effect you have on the two men encourages you to constrict them within your walls again.
It must feel good since that's all it takes to have Seonghwa come to a standstill inside of you, ropes of his cum emptying into your womb and mixing with Hongjoongâs. It's beautifully warm as it shoots up against your cervix. That alone is enough to have you clenching down on them once more.
Seonghwa grunts as you milk him dry, and the moment he's finished spilling his load inside of you, he taps Hongjoongâs hip to get him to pull out of you. Perhaps it's that - the final drag of their dicks against your walls - that pushes you careening off the edge into your final orgasm of the night. Your entire body tightens as your vision turns white for just a moment. You can feel your back arch and your hips buck as Seonghwa continues to toy with your clit, but it's like your mind is separate from your body, unable to control anything that it does in response to the mind-blowing climax.
He takes his fingers away at just the right moment, not wanting to push you any further than you already have been tonight.
Still, it takes a moment or two for you to come back down to earth, the remnants of the orgasm sending endorphins racing through your body as you try to catch your breath. It seems the men on either side of you are in the same boat, heavy breathing the only sound you can hear. It's pleasant to feel their chests rising and falling against you, but the comfort you gain from it doesn't take away from just how empty you feel now.
And perhaps it's that or the sudden crash of adrenaline that makes your throat tighten and tears begin to build up upon your lash line. The first one falls, pretty quickly, but it doesn't get very far as Hongjoong kisses it away. His lips linger against your face, relishing the way your hot skin feels against them.
âWhy are you crying, my lamb?â Seonghwa whispers against your ear. His fingers lift up to brush against your face, swiping away another stray tear, âare you that happy?â
âEmpty,â you correct, voice stuffy as you allow yourself to cry, âbut, I guess happy too. How could I not be when Iâm with you two?â
They both hum in amusement as they crowd you with their bodies. Youâre stuffed between them; the weird pastel meat in an equally weird gothic sandwich, and you wouldn't want to be anywhere else. Not when you know now that youâre theirs, and theyâre yours - the tag of the collar that dangles against your throat reminds you of that fact. You pick it up between your fingers, toying with the cold metal.
âI canât do anything about you feeling empty, Iâm afraid,â Seonghwa says, âbut Iâm certainly pleased youâre happy, my little lamb.â
âYou could stuff me back up?â You say, only half in jest. Hongjoong scoffs and shakes his head in a desperate refusal; clearly, heâs still too sensitive.
Part of you wants to take advantage of that and tease him a little. It would be so easy to shuffle and âaccidentallyâ brush your thigh against his cock. If youâre careful, youâll definitely be able to avoid suspicion, and if you get caught you doubt youâll get much more than a warning. Still, as you look upon his face and see nothing but adoration, the thoughts seem to vanish into thin air.
You let go of your collar, pressing the hand against his cheek instead and use it to hold him in place as you peck the tip of his nose. The metal of the collar clinks as he scrunches his nose up in mock dismay and gently pushes you back into Seonghwaâs chest. You giggle, and its music to their ears; so soft and bright that if it belonged to anyone else, they wouldâve found themselves put off by it.
Since it belongs to you, though, it's become their favourite sound.
ââââââââââââââââââââââââââ
tagged - @vesvosmozhno
#ateez x reader#ateez fanfic#ateez oneshot#ateez fluff#ateez scenarios#ateez fic#ateez smut#poly ateez x reader#poly ateez smut#poly ateez#seonghwa x reader#seonghwa smut#hongjoong smut#hongjoong x reader#matz x reader
3K notes
·
View notes
Text
calling bf!ateez by their government name
genre: ot8 x gn!reader, fluff, crack, fake texts
c/w: swearing, pet names, reader jokingly referred to as 'sir' twice
a/n: i have written zero (0) words recently because my paint by numbers has become my personality đ©âđš sorry yumi LOL @sorryimananti-romantic
#loren writes#ateez fake texts#ateez fic#ateez fics#ateez x reader#ateez ot8 x reader#hongjoong x reader#seonghwa x reader#yunho x reader#yeosang x reader#san x reader#mingi x reader#wooyoung x reader#jongho x reader#ateez fluff#ateez crack#ateez scenarios#ateez imagines#ateez reactions#ateez headcanons#ateez au#ateez smau
4K notes
·
View notes
Text
when youâre just too cute, ATEEZ.
featuring â ateez members x gn!reader ( masterlist )
summary â headcanons of what the ateez boys are like when youâre just too darn cute for words!
contents â fluff, cute aggression, no warnings.
hong â„ joong
ⶠtries to play it cool but ends up stuttering whenever you do something adorable. ⶠcovers his face with his hands to hide his smile and mutters, âstop, youâre too much.â ⶠpulls out his phone to record you, pretending itâs for memories but secretly watches the videos later. ⶠuses your cuteness as inspiration for lyrics, often scribbling down phrases like, âyou make my heart skip a beat.â ⶠcalls you âtoo dangerousâ jokingly because your cuteness distracts him from work. ⶠtries to tease you to balance the power dynamic but ends up melting when you pout. ⶠgifts you oversized clothes because he thinks youâd look even cuter in them. ⶠregularly mutters under his breath, âhow can someone be this cute?â ⶠalways gives in when you ask for something in a sweet voice or with puppy eyes. ⶠquietly brags about you to the other members, but acts nonchalant when they tease him about it.
seong â„ hwa
ⶠsoftly pinches your cheeks and coos, âhow are you so cute?â ⶠtries to remain composed but ends up giggling whenever you do something adorable. ⶠconstantly offers to carry things for you, saying, âcute people shouldnât have to lift a finger.â ⶠgently fixes your hair or clothing while smiling fondly at you. ⶠbuys you cute accessories or plushies that remind him of you. ⶠholds your hand more often, just so he can admire how small and delicate it is in his. ⶠwhenever youâre being too cute, he jokingly says, âi canât handle this,â and pretends to walk away. ⶠtalks about your cuteness as if itâs a world-changing phenomenon. ⶠtries to teach you his âcoolâ expressions but melts when you fail adorably. ⶠprotectively hovers around you in public, thinking everyone else must also find you too cute.
yun â„ ho
ⶠlaughs so hard at your cuteness that he has to sit down to recover. ⶠconstantly pokes your cheeks or playfully taps your nose, saying, âboop!â ⶠteases you about how adorable you are but gets flustered when you call him cute in return. ⶠloves it when you match his playful energy, especially with silly poses or expressions. ⶠchallenges you to aegyo battles but declares you the winner every time. ⶠtakes a million photos of you doing cute things, claiming he needs âevidence.â ⶠrandomly hugs you tightly and says, âyouâre too cute. iâm keeping you.â ⶠtries to keep a straight face but bursts into laughter when you catch him staring. ⶠcomplains jokingly, âyouâre going to give me a heart attack with that cuteness.â ⶠencourages your cute behavior, saying, âdonât ever change. itâs perfect.â
yeo â„ sang
ⶠquietly stares at you with a small smile, occasionally muttering, âso cute.â ⶠpretends to be unbothered but blushes furiously when you catch him staring. ⶠgently pokes your cheeks and murmurs, âi donât think this is fair.â ⶠbuys you matching items, like plushies or keychains, because he loves seeing you happy. ⶠwhen youâre being especially cute, he hides his face in his hands, saying, âyouâre killing me.â ⶠtries to tease you, but his soft voice gives away how much heâs enjoying it. ⶠloves watching you get excited over little things and secretly takes pictures of those moments. ⶠoften uses your cuteness as a reason to spoil you. âhow could i ever say no to that face?â ⶠgives you his hoodie, just to see how adorable you look drowning in it. ⶠsometimes tells the members, âtheyâre too cute. what do i do?â
san â„
ⶠdramatically clutches his chest and exclaims, âiâm not strong enough for this!â ⶠsqueezes you in tight hugs and says, âyouâre like a teddy bear. so squishy!â ⶠconstantly tells you how adorable you are, no matter what youâre doing. ⶠpinches your cheeks gently while giggling, âso cute, it hurts.â ⶠacts jealous if youâre being cute with the other members, saying, âthatâs my cuteness!â ⶠshows you off to everyone, bragging about how âthe cutest person in the worldâ is his. ⶠwhines playfully when youâre cute during serious moments. âhow am I supposed to focus now?â ⶠrandomly bursts into song about how cute you are, complete with dramatic gestures. ⶠinsists on taking selfies with you every time you do something adorable. ⶠcalls you his âweaknessâ and dramatically pretends to faint when you do aegyo.
min â„ gi
ⶠlaughs and squeezes you to his chest uncontrollably whenever you do something cute, sometimes until tears form. ⶠruffles your hair constantly, calling you his âlittle fluff.â ⶠteases you about how small you are compared to him but secretly adores it. ⶠtries to mimic your cute expressions but ends up making you laugh instead. ⶠrandomly picks you up and spins you around, saying, âi canât help it â youâre too cute!â ⶠconstantly compliments you, saying, âyouâre like a real-life cartoon character.â ⶠpretends your cuteness âannoysâ him but canât stop smiling. ⶠbuys you snacks or small gifts just to keep seeing your excited reactions. ⶠgushes about you to his members, saying, âtheyâre so cute, i donât know what to do!â ⶠlike yeosang, always gives in to your requests because, as he says, âhow can i say no to that face?â
woo â„ young
ⶠplayfully scolds you for being âtoo cute,â saying, âthis is illegal!â ⶠmimics your cute behavior but makes it extra dramatic for laughs. ⶠpretends to faint or clutch his heart every time you do something adorable. ⶠconstantly calls you pet names like âcutie pieâ or âbaby.â ⶠshows off your cuteness to everyone, saying, âlook at them! arenât they the cutest?â ⶠtakes countless candid pictures of you and saves them in a special album. ⶠwhines jokingly when youâre cute, saying, âyouâre going to ruin me!â ⶠpulls you into playful dances just to see you smile and giggle. ⶠteases you, âyouâre lucky i love you, or iâd be jealous of how cute you are.â ⶠadmits in quieter moments, âi never thought someone could make me this soft.â
jong â„ ho
ⶠtries to act unaffected but ends up smiling every time youâre cute. ⶠgently pokes your cheek and says, âyouâre not supposed to be this cute, you know.â ⶠloves teasing you about your cuteness but secretly thinks itâs the best thing about you. ⶠrandomly sings for you when heâs overwhelmed by your adorableness. ⶠpretends to be âtough,â saying, âcute things donât work on me,â but folds instantly. ⶠoften shakes his head in disbelief and says, âwhat am i going to do with you?â ⶠbuys you little treats or gifts, claiming, âi couldnât resist because itâs cute like you.â ⶠprotectively hovers around you, saying, âyouâre too cute to handle the world alone.â ⶠlaughs when you try to be serious because look adorable while doing it. ⶠalthough always admits, âi donât think iâll ever get used to how cute you are.â
notes: iâm actually against doing the same trope for multiple groups, but if this is something you guys like then i might do it for my other groups too!
#ateez x reader#ateez reactions#ateez headcanons#ateez scenarios#ateez imagines#ateez angst#ateez smut#ateez au#ateez fanfic#ateez fic#hongjoong x reader#seonghwa x reader#ateez#yunho x reader#yeosang x reader#san x reader#mingi x reader#wooyoung x reader#ateez fics#ateez ot8 x reader#jongho x reader#ateez fluff#headcanons
681 notes
·
View notes
Text
ateez when their s/o gives them cutness aggression
-> words count : 963 words
-> genre : fluff
-> sorry if I made any mistakes, english is not my first language.
-> reblogs and feedbacks are appreciated !
-> author's note : @mjilv gave me the idea of doing an ateez version so here it is ! hope you'll like it !
-> masterlist | ateez masterlist
svt version | ateez version
KIM HONGJOONG
cause of the aggression : hongjoong coming home very sleepy after a long day working at the studio.
actually, itâs more the way he latches on you as soon as he spots you that melts your heart.
you immediately wrap your arms around him and bury your nose in his hair, then you leave a string of kisses on the crown of his head.Â
even after so many hours working, he still smells so good and youâre a little jealous.Â
and hongjoong is too tired to try and stop you from doing your thing, on the contrary, he relaxes even more in your embrace, quietly humming in satisfaction.
âhow was your day joongie ?â
âso much better now that Iâm with you.â
PARK SEONGHWA
cause of the aggression : seonghwa proudly showing off the new lego set he just built.Â
you had always thought that your boyfriendâs passion for lego was endearing, but the way he always seeks out your approval on everything he adds to his collection makes you want to keep him with you forever.Â
so instead of paying attention to the piece in his hands, you squish his cheeks and kiss his lips repeatedly instead.Â
seonghwa whines a few times, asking you what you are doing but honestly, he loves the affection so he quickly shuts up.
ânow, what were you saying, baby ?â
âiâm not sure i wanna talk about legos now. can you kiss me again instead ?â
JEONG YUNHO
cause of the aggression : you know the golden retriever energy he has ? yeah, that is enough.
because why does his whole face light up when he finds you in the cereal aisle at the grocery store, showing off the new ice cream flavors heâs been wanting to try.Â
and you donât care that youâre in public because you just need to show him that you love him.
so you grab his arm and stand on your tippy toes to be able to kiss his cheeks as many times as you want.
and yunhoâs giggles as you do it donât help calm you down.
âwhat was that for ?â
âdonât act like you donât know how cute you are, jeong yunho.â
KANG YEOSANG
cause of the aggression : you know the way heâs looking above himself sometimes ? that is literally the cutest thing ever wtf ???
so when you pass behind the couch and your boyfriend does that, you cannot help the urge to bend down and leave a trail of kisses along his forehead.
yeosang sometimes doesnât understand you, but he loves your kisses so he lets you do your thing.Â
when you finally let him go, you notice his red ears, and you chuckle lightly before giving him a real kiss on the lips.
âiâm never getting used to this.â
âgood, i want you to be surprised everytime i come out of nowhere to give you affection.â
CHOI SAN
cause of the aggression : san pouting at you because you donât want to sleep with him due to the unbearable heat of the summer.Â
you were already sweating like crazy, and you didnât want to wake up in the middle of the night all sticky because your boyfriend wasnât able to keep his hands off of you.
but the way he was pleading you with his whole face was too cute to ignore.Â
so you simply sighed as you settled in his arms again and went to kiss his pouty lips. and as soon as you were done with your attack, san was all smiley again.
âyouâre such a child.â
âmaybe, but you love me.â
SONG MINGI
cause of the aggression : his big smile, the one that makes me want to kill myself because heâs too fucking pretty for this world.Â
when heâs smiling like that, itâs already hard to manage, but when that smile is directed at you, itâs impossible to pass on the opportunity to kiss his whole face.
so you donât hesitate to cup his face in your hands and press your lips against every inch of his skin.
and his smile doesnât leave him as you go on, his own hands going down to grab your waist.
as soon as youâre done, heâs pressing a kiss to your own lips, and his eyes are filled with love.
âi really donât deserve you.â
âyou do mingi, you deserve the world.â
JUNG WOOYOUNG
cause of the aggression : we all know how cute he is when heâs taking care of kids so seeing him be all lovey dovey with your little cousins makes your heart flutter.Â
as soon as wooyoung said his goodbyes to the little girl because you had to go, youâre all over him.
he doesnât understand whatâs happening, and heâs whiny at the beginning, trying to push you off of him.
but he progressively gives up on his plan and simply lets you do your thing.Â
and when you finally let him go - and breathe some fresh air - he cannot hide his cheeky smile.
âsomethingâs wrong with you, i swear.â
âas if youâre not just as crazy !â
CHOI JONGHO
cause of the aggression : once again, the smile. like, his big gummy smile⊠killing myself again.
no but how can you resist him when heâs smiling at you like that ?? you canât !Â
so even if he didnât ask for this, you kiss his face as many times as you can before jongho starts to protest.Â
but both of you know that itâs only to try and keep his composure, because he loves it when youâre showering him with your love like that.
but he has a reputation to hold (he has none but you let him believe it because heâs cute).
âall of that just because of my smile ?â
âdonât play dumb ! you know very well how weak i am !â
-> i don't allow any copies, reposts or translations of my work.
ateez taglist (fill in this to added) :
@sharonxdevi @hann1bee @lil-kpopstan @heevllog @lichyuu @foxinnie8 @lovelyuyu
#ateez x reader#ateez#ateez fics#ateez fluff#hongjoong x reader#kim hongjoong#seonghwa x reader#park songhwa#yunho x reader#jeong yunho#yeosang x reader#kang yeosang#san x reader#choi san#mingi x reader#song mingi#wooyoung x reader#jung wooyoung#jongho x reader#choi jongho#hongjoong fluff#seonghwa fluff#yunho fluff#yeosang fluff#san fluff#mingi fluff#wooyoung fluff#jongho fluff
959 notes
·
View notes